THE PHILOSOPHY OF GlAMBATTISlA VICO BENEDETTO CROCE THE UNIVERSITY OF ILLINOIS LIBRARY Gift of MR. AND MRS. J.H. KANIS Kampen, Holland In memyy of HENDRICK A. J~AN KANIS, 1899-1918. *Class of 1921. UNIVERSITY OF ttlNWS VMHHf MAY 1 6 1919 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO THE PHILOSO?# OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO. BY BENEDETTO CROCE TRANSLATED BY R. G. COLLINGWOOD FELLOW AND LECTURER OF PEMBROKE COLLEGE, OXFORD NEW YORK THE MACMILLAN COMPANY 1913 TO WILHELM WINDELBAND 423407 PREFACE MY reasons for believing that a new exposition of Vico's philosophy is required may easily be inferred from the observations on the effects of his work and the biographical notes which form respectively the second and fourth appendices to this volume. Here I merely wish to state that my exposition is not meant for a summary of Vico's writings work by work and part by part. It rather presupposes an acquaintance with these writings, and, where that is lacking, is intended to induce the reader to procure them in order to follow better and to check the interpretation and estimate of them here offered. On this supposition, though I have made free use of my author's actual words, especially in the chapters dealing with history, I have not thought it desirable to mark them as quotations except where it was important to emphasise the precise phrase of the original. I have in general combined such passages from fragments scattered over a wide field, sometimes abbreviating, sometimes amplifying, and always freely adding words and phrases of my own by way of commentary : and the continual use of quotation marks would merely have shown up in a manner more wearisome than valuable the reverse side of my embroidery, which any reader who so desires can study by the help of the references given at the end of the book. In my anxiety to show in every detail of my work, so viii THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO far as I could, the veneration due to the great name of Vico, I have endeavoured to be brief with the brevity at which he himself aimed as the hall-mark of sterling scientific thought. With this in view I have refrained even from controversy with his various interpreters, and have either contented myself with mere remarks, or more often left my details to be justified by the coherence of my view as a whole. Some of the interpretations supported by me I believe to be the mature fruit of the investigations and controversies which form the greater part of the literature on Vico : all the rest, for which I am personally responsible, and the general idea of my book, I will defend against alternative and contradictory views when occasion arises, should it ever do so, in the detailed and direct manner which I have not thought it necessary to adopt in the course of my exposition. I hope, in fact, that the present work will rekindle rather than quench the discussion of Vico's philosophy: since in him we have, as Goethe calls him, the Altvater whom a nation is happy to possess, and to him we must hark back for a time in order to imbue our modern philosophy with an Italian feeling, however cosmopolitan it may be in thought. The dedication of my book, besides being a token of respect to one of the greatest modern teachers of the history of philosophy, is intended to express the expecta- tion and hope that the gap in this history to which I have called attention more than once, especially on page 277 of the present volume, may soon be filled. B.C. RAIANO (AQUILA), September 1910. TRANSLATOR'S NOTE THIS volume represents the author's La Filosofia di Giambattista Vico (Bari, 1911) forming vol. ii. of his Saggi filosofici ; and also contains a paper read before the Accademia Pontaniana in March 1912 entitled " Le Fonti della gnoseologia vichiana," which figures here as Appendix III. The whole of the translation has been revised by the Author. R. G. C. OXFORD, 1913. CONTENTS * CHAP. PAGE I. Vice's THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE : FIRST PHASE . i II. Vico's THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: SECOND PHASE 21 III. INTERNAL STRUCTURE OF THE NEW SCIENCE . 36 IV. THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE (POETRY AND LANGUAGE) . . . . . . 44 V. THE SEMI-IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE (MYTH AND RELIGION) 62 VI. THE MORAL CONSCIOUSNESS .... 73 VII. MORALITY AND RELIGION 85 VIII. MORALITY AND LAW ...... 95 IX. THE HISTORICAL ASPECT OF LAW . . .103 X. PROVIDENCE 112 XI. THE LAW OF REFLUX 122 XII. METAPHYSICS 134 XIII. TRANSITION TO HISTORY: GENERAL CHARACTER OF Vico's TREATMENT OF HISTORY . . 144 XIV. NEW PRINCIPLES FOR THE HISTORY OF OBSCURE AND LEGENDARY PERIODS . . . .154 XV. HEROIC SOCIETY 165 XVI. HOMER AND PRIMITIVE POETRY . . .183 XVII. THE HISTORY OF ROME AND THE RISE OF DEMOCRACY 197 AM THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO CHAP. PAGB XVIII. THE RETURN OF BARBARISM: THE MIDDLE AGES 213 XIX. VlCO AND THE TENDENCIES OF CONTEMPORARY CULTURE 227 XX. CONCLUSION : Vico AND LATER THOUGHT, PHILO- SOPHICAL AND HISTORICAL .... 236 APPENDICES I. ON THE LIFE AND CHARACTER OF G. B. Vico . 247 II. THE LATER HISTORY OF Vico's THOUGHT . 268 III. THE SOURCES OF Vico's THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE 279 IV. BIBLIOGRAPHICAL NOTES 302 NOTE. PASSAGES OF Vico's WORKS TO WHICH ESPECIAL REFERENCE is MADE IN THE COURSE OF THE EXPOSITION 311 INDEX OF NAMES 313 CHAPTER I VICO'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE I FIRST PHASE THE earliest phase of Vico's theory of knowledge takes the form of a direct criticism of and antithesis to the Cartesianism which had guided European thought for more than half a century, and was to maintain its supremacy over mind and spirit for another hundred years. Descartes, as is well known, had placed the ideal of perfect science in geometry, and endeavoured to reform philosophy and every other branch of knowledge upon this model. Now the geometrical method proceeds analytically till it reaches a self-evident truth, and thence by synthetic deduction it advances to more and more complex propositions. Accordingly, if philosophy were to adopt a rigorous scientific method, it also (thought Descartes) must look for a solid foundation in the shape of an elementary and self-evident truth from which to deduce all its subsequent statements, whether theological, metaphysical, physical, or ethical. Thus self-evidence the " clear and distinct perception or idea " was the supreme test : immediate inference the intuitive con- nexion of thought with existence, cogito with sum provided the elementary truth and the foundation of knowledge. By means of the clear and distinct percep- tion, together with the systematic doubt which led him I B 2 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO to the cogito, Descartes persuaded himself that he had once and for all made an end of scepticism. But, by the same argument, all knowledge which had not been or could not be reduced to clear and distinct perception and geometrical deduction was bound to lose in his eyes all value and importance. This included history, as founded upon testimony ; observation of nature, when not within the sphere of mathematics ; practical wisdom and eloquence, which draw their validity from empirical knowledge of human character ; and poetry, with its world of imaginary presentations. Such products of the mind were for Descartes illusions, chaotic visions, rather than knowledge : confused ideas, destined either to become clear and distinct and so no longer to exist in their original nature, or else to drag on a miser- able existence unworthy of a philosopher's consideration. The daylight of the mathematical method rendered useless the lamps which, while they guide us in the darkness, throw deceptive shadows. Vico, unlike the other opponents of Descartes, did not confine himself to or waste time in scandalised outcries at the danger to religion entailed by the subjective method. He did not inquire, like the schoolmen, whether the cogito was or was not a syllogism, and if so whether it was or was not defective. He did not join in the protest of outraged common-sense against the Cartesian contempt of history, rhetoric, and poetry. He went straight to the heart of the question, to Descartes' criterion of scientific truth itself, the principle of self-evidence. While the French philosopher believed himself to have satisfied all the demands of the strictest science, Vico saw that as a matter of fact, in view of the need which he set out to meet, his proposed method gave little or no assistance. Fine knowledge, says Vico, this of the clear and distinct idea ! That I think what I think is certainly an in- VIC&S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE 3 dubitable fact ; but it has by no means the appearance I a scientific statement. Any idea, however false, may seem self-evident : that I think it so does not give it the force of knowledge. That " he who thinks, exists " was a fact well known to Plautus's Sosia, who expressed this conviction in almost the identical words of the Cartesian philosophy : ' but when I think, I certainly exist - (sed quom cogito, equidem certo sum). But the sceptic will always reply to a Sosia or a Descartes that he has no doubt as to thought; he will even strongly maintain that whatever seems to him cogent is certain, and will uphold it against all objections ; and that he has no loubt as to existence : in fact, he is seeking after it in the right way by suspending judgment and not adding to the obscurity of facts other obscurities arising from opinions. But while asserting all this he will still main- tain that the certitude of his thought and of his existence is the certitude not of science but of consciousness, and 1 common consciousness at that. Clear and distinct perception is so far from being science that since, owing to Cartesianism, the principle has been applied to physics our knowledge of nature has become no more certain' Descartes tried to leap from the plane of common con- sciousness to that of science : he fell back into common consciousness again without having touched his scientific ideal. But in what does scientific truth consist, if not in immediate consciousness ? How does science differ from simple consciousness? What is the criterion, or in ther words, what is the condition which makes science possible ? Clearness and distinctness do not take us a step forward. The formulation of an elementary truth does not solve the problem. The question concerns t a primary truth, but the form which truth must have to enable us to recognise it for scientific or real truth 4 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO In meeting this question, Vico justified his criticism of the inadequacy of the Cartesian criterion by appealing to a principle which at first sight may seem trite and obvious. It is trite not because of the historic theory with which Vico associated it, a theory later refuted by himself : not, that is, because it belongs to one of the earliest strata of Italian philosophy ; but in the sense that it was common to and practically inseparable from Christian thought. To a Christian who declares every day his belief in a God Almighty, Omniscient, Maker of heaven and earth, nothing is more familiar than the assertion that God alone can fully know all things, because he alone is their creator. The primal truth, Vico repeats, is in God, because God is the primal creator. It is an infinite truth because he is the maker of all things, and absolute because it displays to him the internal and external qualities of things, all of which he contains in himself. This same principle of religion and theology had been already invoked in a philosophical context by certain sceptics, as a weapon against the presumptuous claims of human knowledge. Francisco Sanchez, for example, in his Quod, nihil scitur (1581), in discussing the difficulty of knowing the nature and powers of the soul, had observed that if man could have this knowledge in a perfect degree he would be like God, or rather he would be God himself : since it is impossible " that one should know perfectly things which he has not created, nor could God have created things of which he had not perfect foreknowledge, nor ruled them when created : he himself therefore, being alone the perfect wisdom, knowledge, and intellect, penetrates all things, is wise concerning all things, knows all things, and understands all things, because he is all things and in all things, and all things are he and in him " (perfecte cognoscere quis quae non creavit, nee Deus creare potuisset nee creata regere quae non perfecte praecognovisset : VICO'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE 5 ipse ergo solus sapientia cognitio intellectus perfectus omnia penetrat omnia sapit omnia cognoscit omnia in- telligit, quia ipse omnia est et in omnibus, omniaque ipse sunt et in ipso). 1 But Sanchez appeals to this thought only in passing, and without grasping its philosophical import or realising that his hand was resting upon a treasure ; while Vico for the first time drew from the praise of the infinite power and wisdom of God, and from their contrast with the limited faculties of man, the , universal principle of his theory of knowledge, that the condition under which a thing can be known is that the knower should have made it, that the true is identical with the created : verum ipsum factum. This, he explained, is precisely what is meant by saying that science is to know by causes, per causas scire. Since a cause is that which has no need of anything external in order to produce its effect, it is the genus or mode of a thing : to know the cause is to be able to realise the thing, to deduce it from its cause and create it. In other words, it is an ideal repetition of a process which has been or is being practically performed. Cognition and action must be convertible and identical, just as with God intellect and will are convertible and form one single unity. Now once this connexion of the true with the created is recognised as the ideal, and indeed, since the ideal is the truly real, as the true nature of science, the first consequence of such a recognition must be that science is unattainable to man. If God created the world, he alone knows it per causas, he alone knows its genera or modes, he alone possesses scientific knowledge of it. Did man make the world ? Did he make his own soul ? To man is vouchsafed, not science, but only conscious- 1 In the appendix to his Opera Medico, (Tolosae Tectosagum, 1636, p. no). Windelband draws attention to this thought, Gesch. der neueren Philosophic, 3rd ed. i. p. 23. 6 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO ness, which merely traverses objects without being able to show the genus or form whence they proceed. The truth of consciousness is the human side of divine wisdom, related to it as the surface to the solid : rather than truth, we ought to call it certitude. For God, intellegere, understanding ; for man only cogitare, thought, the faculty that gleans elements of reality, but can never gather them all. For God, true demonstration ; for man, observations undemonstrated and unscientific, but either certain through indubitable evidence, probable through sound reasoning, or convincing because of a plausible guess. Certitude, the truth of consciousness, is not science ; but it is not on that account false. Vico was careful not to call the theories of Descartes false : his intention was only to lower them from complete truth to fragmentary truth, from science to consciousness. Cogito ergo sum is very far from false. That we find it expressed by Plautus's Sosia is an argument not for rejecting it, but for accepting it ; only, as a truth of simple consciousness. Thought is not the cause of my existence, and as such is not the ground of scientific knowledge of that existence. If it were, since man, as the Cartesians admitted, consists of body and mind, thought would be the cause of the body : a doctrine which would plunge us into all the mazes of the controversy on the mutual effects of mind and matter. The cogito, then, is a mere sign or indication of my existence, and nothing more. The clear and distinct idea cannot serve as a criterion even of the mind itself, to say nothing of other things ; since the mind, though it knows itself, does not create itself, and accordingly is ignorant of the genus or mode by which it has this knowledge. But the clear and distinct idea is all that is granted to human thought, and, as the only wealth it possesses, is beyond price. For Vico, too, metaphysic holds the highest place among the human sciences, and all others depend upon VICOS THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE 7 it ; but while for Descartes it can proceed by a method of absolute demonstration parallel to that of geometry, for Vico it must be satisfied with probabilities. It is a science not by causes, but of causes. And with prob- abilities it has been content in its greatest periods, in ancient Greece and in Italy at the Renaissance. When- ever, intoxicated by the arrogance that declares that " a wise man has no opinions " (sapientem nihil opinari), it has sought to abandon the probable, it has set its feet upon the path of confusion and decadence. The existence of God is certain, but not scientifically demonstrable ; and any attempt at such a demonstration must be con- sidered a proof not so much of piety as of impiety, since to demonstrate God we must create him : man must become the creator of God. Similarly we must accept as true all that God has revealed ; but we must not ask how it comes to be true. That we can never understand. Human science bases itself upon revealed truth and the consciousness of God, and finds there its test of truth ; but the foundation itself is not science, but consciousness. Just as Vico depreciated metaphysics, theology, and physics, the sciences upon which Descartes had bestowed honour and attention, so he reinstated those branches of knowledge which Descartes had in turn despised ; namely, history, observation of nature, empirical knowledge of man and society, eloquence and poetry. Or rather, he could vindicate them without reinstating them. Once he had shown that the lofty truths of a geometrically deduced philosophy were themselves brought down to mere probability, to statements having the validity of simple consciousness, the other forms of knowledge were ipso facto conclusively vindicated. All now found them- selves upon an equality in the position, whether high or low, which we have described. The idea of a perfect human science, holding itself aloof from another science unworthy of the title, as founded not on reason but on 8 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO authority, was shown to be illusory. The authority of observations and beliefs, whether one's own or others', public opinion, tradition, the consciousness of mankind, were restored to the position which they had always held : a position which they held even for Descartes himself, who, as often happens, despised the resources in which he was richest and of which he made the greatest use. A conspicuously learned man, he depreciated learning and scholarship, as one who has received nourishment from it might give himself the luxury of speaking with contempt of the common food which by now forms the very blood in his veins. The Cartesian polemic against authority had proved in some respects beneficial. It put an end to the servile attitude, all too common, of continual appeals to authority. But this error was not more prevalent than that of private judgment, which presumed to reorganise knowledge from top to bottom on the strength of the individual conscious- ness : a tendency which ultimately, as in the case of Malebranche, leads to prophesying the immolation of all the ancient philosophers and poets, and a return to the nakedness of Adam. It is a fallacy, or at least an excess, which should be avoided by adopting a sound middle course. This course consists in following private judg- ment with due regard to authority ; in a true catholic union of faith with a criticism limited by and helpful to faith ; bearing in mind the necessary character of mere probability which is proper to human knowledge or science, and avoiding the tendency of the Reformation which elevates each man's inner consciousness into a divine guide in matters of belief. To another group of the Cartesian sciences, however, Vico seems to grant a privileged position, one, that is, not of consciousness but of science strictly so called, in the sphere not of certitude but of truth ; namely, the mathematical sciences. These, according to him, form VICWS THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE g the only region in which man's knowledge is identical in character with God's, perfect and demonstrative. This is not due, as Descartes supposed, to their self-evident character. Self -evidence, when employed in physical science and in matters of action, does not yield truth of the same conclusiveness as in mathematics. Nor is mathematics in itself self-evident. What clear and distinct idea can lead, for instance, to the conception of a line as composed of points having no parts ? But the indivisible point which cannot be conceived in the world of reality, can be nevertheless denned. By defining certain names, man creates the elements of mathematics ; by the postulates, he carries them on to infinity ; by the axioms, he establishes certain eternal truths ; and, disposing these elements with the help of these infinities and this eternity, he creates the truth which he teaches. The validity of mathematics then arises not from the Cartesian principle, but precisely from Vico's other pro- position, the conversion of knowledge with creation. ' We demonstrate mathematics, because we create their truth " (mathematica demonstramus, quid verum facimus). Man assumes unity and multiplicity, points and figures, and creates numbers and quantities which he knows perfectly because they are his own work. Mathematics is a constructive science ; not only in its problems, but even in its theorems, which are commonly supposed to be mere objects of contemplation. For this reason it is a science which demonstrates per causas, in opposition to that other common view which excludes from mathe- matics the concept of causation. It is in fact the only one among all the human sciences which truly demon- strates by causes. Hence its extraordinary accuracy. The whole secret of the geometrical method lies first in defining the terms, that is, creating the concepts which are to be the subject matter of our reasoning ; secondly, in establishing certain common principles by mutual io THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO consent of the disputants; and lastly, if required, in making certain postulates of such a nature that they can be granted, to enable us to proceed with our deductions, which without such an agreement could make no progress ; then, upon these principles, to advance by degrees from the demonstration of the simplest truths to the most complex, and not to affirm the complex propositions before examining singly their component parts. It might be said that, as to the validity of mathe- matics, Vico is in agreement with Descartes ; he differs from him only in his reason for this validity. And, admitting that Vico's reason must be thought the more profound, this would only enhance and strengthen the mathematical ideal which Descartes had set before science. If mathematics is the one perfect form of knowledge attained by the human mind, obviously we must found the others upon it, and either remodel or condemn them according to its pattern. Vico, in short, was hasty in declaring Descartes wrong : he had found a better argument whose existence the latter had not suspected. But, however strongly this may appear at first sight (and so it has appeared to some commentators), on a closer examination it is seen that the high perfection attributed by Vico to mathematics is more apparent than real ; that the vaunted conclusiveness of its method is by his own confession gained at the expense of truth : in a word, that the stress of his theory falls less on the truth of mathematics than on its arbitrary nature. The fact is, that man, while occupying himself with the investigation of the nature of things, and ultimately realising his total inability to attain it, not having in himself the elements of which they are composed, which are indeed all external to his nature, is led by degrees to the intention of profiting by this very fault of his mind. By means of abstraction not, be it remembered, abstrac- tion from material things, for Vico is opposed to the THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE n empirical origin of mathematics, but abstraction brought to bear on metaphysical entities he creates two fictions, duo sibi confingit : the point in geometrical figures, and unity in multiplication. Each is a fiction, utrumque fictum, because the point when drawn is no longer a point, and the unit when multiplied is no longer one. Then, from these fictions, by his own arbitrary fiat, proprio iure, he assumes an infinite process, so that lines may be produced or the unit multiplied ad infinitum. Thus he constructs for his own purposes a world of forms and numbers, all of which he embraces within himself ; and by lengthening, shortening, and combining the lines and adding and subtracting the numbers, he performs infinite operations and learns infinite truths. Since he cannot define things, he defines names ; since he cannot reach the elements of reality he satisfies himself with imaginary elements, the ideas arising from which admit of no dispute. Like God, ad Dei instar, from no material substrate and, as it were, out of nothing he creates the point, the line, and the surface ; the point, assumed as that which has no parts ; the line, as the locus of a point, or as length without breadth or depth ; and the surface, as the meeting of two different lines in one point, that is, length and breadth without depth. Thus mathematics overcomes the failing of human knowledge, that its objects are always external to itself, and that the mind which endeavours to know them has not created them. Mathematics creates what it knows ; it contains in itself its own elements, and thus forms a perfect copy of the divine knowledge (scientiae divinae similes evadunt}. The reader of these and other similar descriptions and praises by Vico of the processes of mathematics seems to observe in them something like a tinge of irony ; which, if not actually intentional, certainly results from the facts of the case. The brilliant truth of mathematics arises, it appears, from despair of attaining truth ; its tremendous power from the knowledge of impotence. The similarity of the mathematician to God is not altogether unlike that x>f the imitator of an object to its creator. What God is in the universe of reality, man is in the universe of quantity and number, a universe indeed, but one peopled by abstractions and fictions. The divinity which has been conferred upon man is only, so to speak, a Twelfth-night Godhead. The different origin assigned by Vico to mathematics results in a correspondingly profound change in the validity of its truth. Mathematics no Monger, as with Descartes, stands at the summit of human knowledge, an aristocratic science, destined to reclaim and to rule over the inferior sciences. It occupies a field as strictly limited as it is unique, beyond which if it ever attempts to pass it loses in a moment its magical virtue. The power of mathematics is met by obstacles both a parte ante and a parte post, in its foundations and in the superstructure which in its turn it is to support. In its foundations, because if it creates its own elements, that is to say, the initial fictions, it does not create the matter of which they are formed, which is given to it no less than to the other human sciences by metaphysics, which while it cannot supply it with its true subject matter, supplies it with definite images of it. From metaphysics, geometry takes the point by drawing it, that is by annihilating it as a point, and arithmetic the unit by multiplying it, that is by destroying it qua unit. But since metaphysical truth, however certain it may seem to consciousness, is indemonstrable, mathematics itself rests in the last resort upon authority and prob- ability. This is enough to expose the fallaciousness of any mathematical treatise which makes use of meta- physics. ' Vico seems to be involved in a kind of circle between geometry and metaphysics, of which the former, according to him, owes its truth to the latter, and after VICO'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE 13 receiving it gives it back again to metaphysics, thus in turn supporting the human science by the divine. But this conceptipn, the truth of which is more than doubtful, indeed we may frankly call it inconsistent and contra- dictory, recalls, whatever its value, the metaphysical or rather poetical or symbolic use made of mathematics by Pythagoras and other philosophers of antiquity and the Renaissance, and has no resemblance to a mathematically- treated philosophy like the Cartesian. Geometry in Vico's opinion is the one hypothesis by which meta- physics passes over into physical science. But while making this advance it remains a hypothesis, a prob- ability, something intermediate between faith and criti- cism, imagination and reason ; which indeed is the eternal character of metaphysics and human science in general according to Vico's point of view in this first phase of his theory of knowledge. Just as mathematics cannot be the basis of meta- physics, the science from which it is itself derived, so it cannot provide a foundation for the other sciences, although they follow it in order of derivation. All objects other than number and size are beyond the reach of the geo- metrical method. Physical science is indemonstrable : if we could demonstrate the physical world, we should be creating it (si physica demonstrare possemus, faceremus) : but we do not create it, and are accordingly unable to demonstrate it. The introduction of the mathematical method into natural science has not helped it. Without the mathematical method, science makes great dis- coveries ; by its means it has made none, whether great or small. The physical science of to-day is in fact like a house, sumptuously furnished by former owners, to which their heirs have added nothing, but have occupied themselves merely in moving and rearranging the furniture. Accordingly, we must reintroduce and maintain the experimental method in physical science, as opposed to 14 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO this mathematical method ; the English tendency as opposed to the French ; the cautious use made of mathematics by Galileo and his school, as against the Cartesians' reckless and presumptuous employment of it. The English are right in not allowing physical science to be taught in the mathematical style. Such a style admits of progress only when the terms are denned, the axioms established, and the postulates granted. In physical science we have to define not terms but things : we can make no unchallenged statements ; and the com- plexity of nature forbids our forming any postulates. Thus in the more favourable instances this method results in a mere harmless verbalism. Observations of nature are expounded with the phrases : " By definition IV.," " By postulate II.," " By axiom III.," and con- cluded with the pompous abbreviation " Q.E.D. " But all this carries no demonstrative conviction. The mind retains as much freedom of opinion as it had before listening to such noisy methods. In these circumstances Vico could not refrain from satirical comparisons. The geometrical method, he says, in its proper sphere works unnoticed ; when it makes a noise, it shows that it is doing no work ; just as a coward's attack consists of much shouting and no blows, while a brave man holds his tongue and strikes home. Again, the man who upholds the geometrical method in subjects where it fails to carry conviction, when he pronounces this to be an axiom, or that to be a demonstrated truth, is like a man who draws amorphous pictures, quite unrecognisable without assistance, and then writes underneath " This is a man," or " This is a satyr," or " This is a lion," or the like. Hence it happens that the very same geometrical method served Proclus to demonstrate the principles of Aristotelian science, and Descartes to demonstrate his own, though totally distinct from, if not diametrically opposed to them. Yet each was a great geometrician, VICO'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE 15 whom no one could accuse of inability to use the method. What ought to be introduced into natural science is not the method of geometry, but its conclusiveness ; which is precisely what can never be done. Still less is it possible in other sciences, in proportion as they are more material and concrete ; least of all in ethical science. For this reason, where the reality cannot be used, the name is misused instead ; till, just as the title " Master," which Tiberius once refused as too haughty, is given to-day to the humblest man, so the name " demonstration," applied as it is to arguments at best probable, sometimes patently fallacious, has impaired the respect due to truth. Even for mathematics itself Vico apprehends danger from the substitution of analytic for geometrical or syn- thetic methods. He doubts whether modern mechanics is really a product of analysis ; for analysis blunts the inventive faculty or talent, and though infallible in its results (opere) is confused in its processes (opera) ; while the synthetic method is turn opere cum opera in- fallible. Analysis presents its grounds by inquiring whether the equations of which it is in search happen to be present ; it appears to be an art of guessing, a kind of mechanism rather than thought. For similar reasons Vico attached no value to the more or less mechanical topics and arts of discovery and memory invented by Lulle and Kircher. The sympathy with experimental methods which as we have seen estranged Vico from the French tendency of thought, that is from Cartesianism, and directed him towards the Italian and English schools of Galileo and Bacon, led him on the other hand to a hostile attitude towards Aristotelianism and scholasticism. Inculcating as he did the pursuit of the particular and the use of inductive methods, asserting that man possessed an in- exhaustible wealth of physical knowledge which, thanks 1 6 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO to fire, machinery, and tools, was able to issue in the creation of objects resembling the special products of nature, and praising his own metaphysic as one sub- servient to (ancillantem] the ends of experimental science, he was bound to realise how well deserved was the too universal discredit, as he calls it, into which Aristotelian science had fallen. If he disapproved of the introduction by Descartes of physical forms into metaphysics, and of his resulting materialistic tendencies, he accused Aristotle and the schoolmen of the opposite error of introducing metaphysical forms into natural science. Like Bacon he held that the syllogism and sorites produce nothing new, and only repeat what was already contained in their premisses. He emphasised the many ill effects of the Aristotelian universal in every department of knowledge ; in jurisprudence, where empty generalities crush legisla- tive wisdom ; in medicine, which aims rather at propping up systems than at healing the sick ; and in practical life, in which he describes the abusers of universals by the mocking title of " Thematists." The use of universals results in homonymies or equivocations which cause all kinds of errors. As against this distrust of universals in the sense of general or abstract conceptions, Vico showed a corresponding reverence for the Platonic ideas, the metaphysical forms, or as he also called them, kinds ; the eternal and infinitely perfect patterns of things. A nominalist in mathematics, Vico was suspicious of nomin- alism in all other fields of knowledge. He asserts the reality of the forms or ideas, and tells how from his youth up he was attracted by this doctrine, which he learnt from a teacher of his, who as a Scotist was a follower of the scholastic system most akin to Plato's. Taken as a whole Vico's first theory of knowledge is neither intellectualistic, sensationalistic, nor truly specu- lative. It contains all these three elements, harmonised to a certain extent, not by a hierarchical subordination VlCCfS THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE 17 of any two to the third, but by the subjection of all three to a recognition of the inadequacy of human knowledge. Its intention may have been to meet by a tactical manoeuvre dogmatics and sceptics at once, the former by denying that we can know everything, the latter by denying that we can know nothing at all. But its actual outcome is an assertion of scepticism or agnosti- cism, tinged, however, with a trace of mysticism. God's knowledge is the complete sphere of knowledge, the unity of which man's is but a series of fragments. God knows all things because he contains in himself all the elements of which he makes them : man tries to under- stand them by taking them to pieces. Human science is a sort of anatomy of the world of nature ; it divides man into body and soul, and soul into intellect and will : from body it abstracts figure and motion, and from these existence and unity. Of these metaphysics studies existence, arithmetic unity and multiplication, geometry figure and its measurements, mechanics the motion of the circumference, physical science the motion of the centre, medicine the body, logic the reason, and ethics the will. But this anatomy meets with the same fate as that of the human body. In the latter case, the greatest physiologists doubt whether, owing to the effects of death and of dissection itself, it is possible at all to discover the true position, structure, and function of the organs. Existence, unity, figure, motion, body, intellect, and will are one thing for God, for whom they coalesce into one, and another for man, to whom they remain distinct. For God they live, for man they are dead. The clear and distinct perception is a proof not of the strength but of the weakness of the human under- standing. Physical laws appear self-evident just until they are subjected to comparison with metaphysical. The Cogito ergo sum is absolutely conclusive when man considers himself as a finite being ; but when he includes c i8 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA V1CO himself in God, the one true being, he realises that in truth he does not exist at all. By means of extension and its three dimensions we believe ourselves to establish eternal truths ; but in fact coelum ipsum petimus stultitia, since the eternal truths exist in God alone. The axiom that the whole is greater than the part may seem eternal, but if we go back to the beginning, we find that it is false : we see that the centre of the circle contains in itself as much capacity for extension as the whole circum- ference. Wherefore, Vico concludes, " he has advanced in metaphysics who in the study of this science has lost himself." To hold, as some have done, that these words show Vico a simple Platonist or a follower of the traditional Christian philosophy, would entail denying any import- ance whatever to his first theory of knowledge. It would be a confession of adherence to the fallacious method of philosophical criticism and history which looks only at the general conclusions of a system and ignores the particular content which alone gives it its true individu- ality. No doubt, any philosophy must always in its ultimate conclusions be either agnostic, mystical, material- istic, spiritualistic, or the like : in other words, it must have its place in one or other of the eternal categories in which thought and philosophical inquiry move. But to expound philosophers in this one-sided manner can only serve to perpetuate the mistakes repeated over and over again in the history of thought, when it passes fruit- lessly from one error to another, leaving the old only to adopt the new, itself perhaps an old one born again or painted with the colours of youth. The Platonism, agnosticism, or mysticism of Vico is in the fullest sense of the word original, because it forms the accompani- ment of doctrines not only not inferior to the average of contemporary thought, but greatly in advance of it. THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: FIRST PHASE 19 The first of these doctrines is the theory of knowledge as the conversion of the true with the created, Vico's substitute for the otiose criterion of the clear and distinct perception. Though this conversion represents for Vico an ideal unattainable to man, it yet does not bring with it an exact definition of the condition and character of knowledge, the identity of thought and being, without which knowledge is inconceivable. The second is the revelation of the nature of mathe- matics, as unique among the forms of human knowledge in origin, rigorous because arbitrary, wonderful but unfit to rule over and transform the rest of our knowledge. Finally, the third doctrine is the vindication of the world of intuition, empirical knowledge, probability, and authority, all those forms of experience which intellectual- ism ignored or denied. In these points Vico the agnostic, the Platonist, the mystic, was neither agnostic nor mystic nor Platonist. He achieved a threefold advance upon Descartes, and upon all these three heads criticised him conclusively. The one thing in which Descartes was still in advance of Vico was precisely that dogmatism of which Vico would have none. Descartes, whether he succeeded or not, projected a perfect human science deduced from the internal consciousness. Vico, on the other hand, con- sidering the French philosopher too confident and despairing of the success of his project, proclaimed the transcendent nature of truth, took his stand upon revela- tion, and contented himself with producing a metaphysic worthy of man's weakness, humana imbecillitate dignam. His was a philosophy of humility, as the Cartesian was one of self-confidence. Now Vico could not advance even to this position without relaxing to some extent part of his humility, and taking over something of Descartes's confidence: with- out introducing into his Catholic turn of mind some 20 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO trace of the leaven of that Protestantism he thought so dangerous, and venturing to conceive a philosophy rather less worthy of man's weakness and correspondingly more worthy of man, a creature at once strong and weak, at once man and God. This advance is to be seen in the next phase of his thought. CHAPTER II VICO'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE : SECOND PHASE THE will to believe, which in Vice's case was very strong, and the complete sway which the Catholicism of his country and age held over his mind, bound him firmly down to the Christian Platonic metaphysic and theory of knowledge ; a theory whose inherent contradictions were prevented by the above psychological facts from coming explicitly before his mind. The idea of God at once dominated and supported him ; he neither had the audacity nor realised the necessity to probe to the bottom such problems as the validity of revelation, the con- ceivability of a God apart from the world, or the possi- bility of affirming the existence of God without in some sense demonstrating and therefore creating him. For Vico to open up and partially traverse a new path, which should lead the human mind to transcend that of the Christian Platonists, providence to use for the moment an idea of his own which we shall explain later on had perforce to deceive him ; to lead him by a long and circuitous way to the commencement of the new path without letting him suspect where it would end. The writings in which Vico expounds his first theory of knowledge, De rations studiorum and De antiquissima Italorum sapientia, together with the polemical works bear- ing upon them, belong to the four years from 1708 to 1712. In the following decade Vico was gradually led to devote 21 22 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO himself more and more to research in the history of law and of the State. He read Grotius as a preparation for writing the life of Antonio Carafa, and plunged into the controversy on Natural Rights. He pursued his studies of Roman law and the science of law in general, in order to fit himself for a chair of jurisprudence at Naples Uni- versity. He pondered upon the origins of languages, religions, and states, out of dissatisfaction with his own historical theories as set forth in the De antiquissima ; perhaps also his convictions were shaken by a well- directed criticism by the editor of the Giornale del letterati. His profession, the teaching of rhetoric, gave him con- tinual opportunities for meditating upon the nature and relations of poetry and the forms of language. Thus even if it is inaccurate to say that Vico was led to his later position culminating in the Scienza Nuova by a philological, not a philosophical process (since clearly a philosophical position can only come into being through a process no less philosophical), it is at least certain that the material and stimulus for his new thought were supplied by philological studies. These studies seem to have impressed upon him a fact of great importance ; namely, that this subject-matter could only be and had actually been worked over by his thought through the aid of certain necessary principles, appearing on every page of the history which he had chosen for investigation. He had once believed that the moral sciences, as compared with the mathematical method, took the lowest place as regards certainty. But now, in his daily acquaintance with these sciences, he had come to hold the opposite view ; namely, that nothing could be firmer than the foundation of the moral sciences. This certainty was not the simple self -evidence of Descartes, in which the object, however internal it is said to be, remains extrinsic to the subject. It was a truly internal certainty, reached by an internal process. In V ICG'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: SECOND PHASE 23 the assimilation of historical facts, Vico felt himself to be making more truly his own something that already belonged to him ; to be entering into possession of what was his by right. He was reconstructing the history of man ; and what was the history of man but a product of man himself ? Is not the creator of history simply man, with his ideas, his passions, his will, and his actions ? And is not the mind of man, the creator of history, identical with the mind which is at work in thinking it and knowing it ? The truth of the constructive principles of history then comes not from the validity of the clear and distinct idea, but from the indissoluble connexion of the subject and object of knowledge, 3c" The importance of this new discovery, the discovery of the truth which Vico now recognised in the moral sciences, lay in the realisation of a new implication of the theory of knowledge laid down by himself in the former period of his speculations ; namely, the criterion of truth consisting in the " convertibility of the true with the created." The reason why man could have perfect knowledge of man's world was simply that he had him- self made that world. " When it happens that he who creates things also describes them, then the history is certain in the highest degree." Connected as it thus was with his earlier view, the assertion of the possibility of the moral sciences did not, to Vice's own mind, present the importance and bring with it the consequences of a revolution entirely over- throwing the structure of his ideas, and compelling him to adjust them afresh. On the one hand, this assertion seemed to him a confirmation of his former doctrine, a new example to be added to those he had already collected of perfect knowledge ; namely, God's knowledge of the universe and man's of the world of mathematics. On the other hand, it seemed to be an extension of the field of knowledge, whose boundaries (for definite boundaries still 24 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATT1STA VICO existed) had at first been too narrowly drawn. Formerly he had described a small luminous sphere in the centre of a vast and dimly lighted field ; now the luminous sphere underwent a definite increase in size, and the penumbral region a corresponding diminution. This increase involved no sort of conflict with his religious beliefs ; in fact, it seemed to support them and to gain support from them in turn. For did not religion teach the liberty, responsibility, and consciousness which man has in respect of his own acts and creations ? Thus Vico did not feel obliged to write a new treatise on metaphysics. It seemed enough to add a mere post- script to his former work, and to correct to some extent his earlier assertions. His new theory of knowledge, while adhering strictly to the criterion of truth enunciated by him in opposition to that of Descartes the principle, that is, that only the creator of a thing can know it divided the whole of reality into the world of nature and the world of man. But, while it laid down that the world of nature is created by God and that therefore God alone knows it, it restricted its agnosticism to this field. It asserted, on the other hand, that the human world, being man's creation, is known by man. In this way it raised the knowledge of human affairs, formerly considered merely approximate and probable, to the rank of perfect science ; and it expressed surprise that philosophers should so laboriously endeavour to attain to science of the world of nature, which is a sealed book to mankind, while passing over the world of man, the science of which is attainable. The cause of this error he traced to the ease with which man's mind, involved and buried as it is in the body, feels bodily things, and the labour and pains it costs it to understand itself, as the bodily eye sees all objects outside itself, but in order to see itself requires the help of the mirror. In everything else his system remained unchanged. VIC&S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: SECOND PHASE 25 Beyond the world of man lay the supernatural world, inaccessible to man, and the world of nature, itself also in a sense supernatural. Beyond the perfect knowledge which man could have of himself lay the metaphysic of Christian Platonism, now reduced to impotence, but con- tinuing none the less to embarrass mankind. The natural sciences were now, as before, regarded as incomplete forms of knowledge : mathematics as a system of abstrac- tions, absolutely valid in the abstract but in face of reality powerless. The Aristotelian syllogism, the Stoic sorites, and the Cartesian geometrical method were pursued with the same hatred as before; and the same enthusi- astic praise was lavished upon the induction advocated and illustrated in his Organum by Bacon, that " great philosopher and great statesman," and fruitfully employed by his countrymen in experimental philosophy. Vice's frequent claim to have constructed the science of human affairs on " a strict geometric method " might seem to indicate a change of opinion as to the applica- bility of that method. But his continual warnings, during the same period and in the same works, against the use in physical and moral questions of the mathe- matical method, which, " where there are no figures either of lines or numbers, either gives us no conclusiveness, or else, instead of demonstrating the truth, may often give an appearance of demonstration to falsehood," would flatly contradict the supposed change of front were it not that we could interpret it so as completely to restore the coherence of Vico's thought. This interpretation is quite simple. Once the power of converting the true with the created is seen to attach to the moral sciences no less than to geometry, these sciences could and indeed must develop on a method analogous to the synthetic method of geometry, the method which proceeds from a truth to its immediate consequence. In this manner they follow the progress of the world of man from its ideal origin to its perfect development ; so that the student must not hope to be able to investigate these sciences per saltum, but must traverse them from beginning to end in detail, without refusing to accept unforeseen con- clusions any more than he can refuse to do so in geometry ; but concentrating his attention on the firmness of the bond between premisses and conclusion. Thus the method could be called geometric by analogy or synecdoche ; in fact, however, it was essentially speculative, and not to be confused with the application of mathematics to questions of morals, of which the Cartesians and Spinoza have left examples. Nor can we agree without reservation to the opinion of certain commentators that Vico, in asserting the existence of a single science of man, to be studied in the modifications of the human mind, was retreating to the position of a follower of Descartes. This opinion is often reinforced by another statement of Vico's, namely, that to conceive his New Science it would be well to return to a state of absolute ignorance, as if no philosophers, philologists, nor books had even existed in the world. It is true that with the new form of his theory of knowledge Vico himself joined the ranks of modern subjectivism, initiated by Descartes. In a sense, indeed, he had already done so in his activistic doctrine of truth as the recon- struction of the created. In this quite general sense Vico might himself be called a Cartesian. Nevertheless, if he was still behind Descartes in making his subjectivism a principle not of the whole of knowledge but of the know- ledge of the world of man only, in another way he was ahead of the French philosopher, in that for him the truth attained in the world of man was not static but dynamic, not a discovery but a product, not consciousness but science. As for the advice that one should proceed as if there were no books, no philosophical or philological doctrines VICO'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: SECOND PHASE 27 in the world, its meaning is merely the necessity of ridding oneself of all prejudice, of all common habitual assump- tions, of all accretions of memory and fancy, in order to attain " the state of pure understanding, empty of every particular form," which is necessary for the discovery and apprehension of any new truth. So far removed is this advice from the Cartesian or Malebranchian renuncia- tion of learning and authority, that to mention one fact only in the very passage to which we have just referred we find the warning that the New Science pre- supposes a comprehensive and varied mass both of doctrine and of learning, the truths of which it takes over as already known, and uses them as terms in its new propositions. In a word, Vico in his new theory of knowledge became not more Cartesian but more Vician more himself. Descartes seemed to him not even a serviceable path by which to attain proof of the possibility of constructing the science of mind by means of the mind. The true path was Vico's own criterion of truth, brought into relation with its author's observations made in the course of his historical studies. If we wish to look for precedents in the history of philosophy for Vico's theory of knowledge in its second form, the division between the two worlds of reality and the two spheres of consciousness, and the preference for moral as compared with natural studies, would lead us back to the position adopted by Socrates as against the " Physiologists " of his time, and the feeling of religious mystery which brought the Athenian philosopher to a standstill in face of the natural world and directed his efforts to the study of the mind of man. Again, as to the superior transparency of the moral sciences, as dealing with objects created by man himself, we might recall the Aristotelian division of the sciences into physical, treating of motion external to man, and practical and " poietic," which deal with man's own 28 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO creations. The distinction passed into the philosophy of the schools : Thomas Aquinas speaks of nature as " an order which reason contemplates but does not create" (ordo quern ratio consider at sed nonfacit), and of the world of human activity as "an order which reason creates by contemplation " (ordo quern ratio consider ando facit}. But no such reference is made by Vico, fond as he was of expressing the debt of his own thought to the ancient philosophers ; and admitting that the doctrine had some force before his time, the divergence between this earlier view and that of Vico on the knowableness of the world of man is as great as that between the assertion of the omniscience of God the Creator and the theory of know- ledge which Vico was able to draw from it. Of this theory, his doctrine of the moral sciences was neither more nor less than the first legitimate application. Both its author and the majority of his commentators are using inaccurate language in describing it as a simple extension of the previous applications a second instance, added to that of the mathematical sciences, already examined. In the mathematical sciences, the principle of the conversion of the true with the created had been applied in appearance only. The principle itself was original and sound : so was the theory of mathematics. But the connexion between the two truths was altogether arti- ficial and false. What was lacking was, unless we are mistaken, an effective relation between the concept of God who creates the world and, as creating it, knows it, and that of the man who arbitrarily constructs a world of abstractions, and in doing so either knows nothing at all, or else, when he ceases to be a geometer or arithmetician and becomes a philosopher, when he is composing not Euclid's Elements but the theory of knowledge in the De antiquissima, knows merely that his procedure is arbitrary. If the mathematical sciences construct VICaS THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: SECOND PHASE 29 their concepts as they please, if they produce not truth but definitions, they are as a matter of fact not sciences at all, nor any form of knowledge, and cannot be compared with the divine knowledge, the knowledge of actual reality. In mathematics, says Vico, " man, holding within himself an imaginary world of lines and numbers, operates in this world by abstraction just as God operates in the universe by reality." It is a luminous comparison ; but perhaps its light is that of metaphor rather than logic. In the moral sciences, on the other hand, the comparison is so entirely logical that it should frankly be called co- incidence. Human knowledge is qualitatively identical with divine, and knows the world of man equally well ; it is, however, quantitatively more restricted, and does not extend like the divine to the world of nature. In the human field we no longer find the expedients of weak- ness, definitions and falsifications ; knowledge is here at its highest point of concreteness. Man creates the human world, creates it by transforming himself into the facts of society : by thinking it he re-creates his own creations, traverses over again the paths he has already traversed, reconstructs the whole ideally, and thus knows it with full and true knowledge. Here is a real world ; and of this world man is truly the God. It seems undeniable, then, that the application of the " verum-factum " made in the New Science is the only one which corresponds to the criterion previously for- mulated. The earlier attempt at an application of it to mathematics, though important in other respects and well calculated to free the mind from mathematical prejudice, cannot be considered a true or strict use of it. It is possible that Vico was sometimes vaguely conscious of the difference between the two applications, the strict and the metaphorical, which as a rule he confused and treated as identical. The science of the world of man, he says, proceeds exactly as does geometry, which while 30 THE PHILOSOPHY OF G1AMBATTISTA VICO it constructs out of its elements or contemplates the world of quantity, itself creates it ; but with proportion- ately greater reality, since order has no connexion with human affairs, containing as they do neither points, lines, surfaces, nor figures. Another indication of his gradually dawning consciousness that he had now for the first time in his doctrine of the world of man discovered a true and proper knowledge, not a mere fiction of know- ledge, may perhaps be seen in the much greater con- viction, warmth, and enthusiasm with which he now uses the epithet " divine " : quite a different thing from the chilly, if not absolutely ironical, ad, Dei instar of the De antiquissima. The proofs of the New Science, he says more than once, with fervour, " are divine hi their nature, and should give thee, Reader, a divine joy : since in God knowledge and creation are one." The conversion of the true with the created was bound to react upon the treatment of certitude in one, perhaps the chief, of the various meanings in which Vico uses the word, namely, historical fact : the peculiare, cerium, as opposed to the commune or verum. This forms the other important section of Vico's second theory of knowledge. In the former theory these cognitions were, as we saw, legitimised and protected by being put on a level with all other kinds of knowledge, all of them equally weak or equally strong, being all alike founded on probability or authority, whether of the individual (autopsy) or of mankind. But now that the knowledge of the human mind and its laws was rescued from the region of authority and probability, historical fact, although still in a sense, by its very nature, founded upon authority, was placed in a new light. The certain must enter into a new relation, confronted as it now was not by another certainty, that is, mere probable knowledge of the human mind, but by a truth, a piece of philosophical knowledge. V ICG'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: SECOND PHASE 31 This relation is also called by Vico the relation between philosophy and philology : the former dealing with neces- sities of nature, necessaria naturae, and contemplating the reason from which issues the science of truth; the latter with decisions of the human will, placita humani arbitrii, and following the authority whence comes know- ledge of the certain. The one considers the universal, the other the individual ; the one, as Leibniz would have said, the verites de raison, the other the verites de fait. With Vico the distinction is not so clearly expressed : in fact, authority as opposed to reason sometimes, accord- ing to him, becomes a part of reason itself, or is confused with the knowledge of the human will as opposed to that of rational volition ; but the general sense is none the less quite plain. By philology Vico means not only the study of words and their history, but, since words are bound up with the ideas of things, he means also the history of things. Thus philologists should deal with war, peace, alliances, travels, commerce, customs, laws and coinage, geography and chronology, and every other subject con- nected with man's life on earth. Philology in a word, in Vico's sense, which is also the true sense, embraces not only the history of language or literature, but also that of events, philosophy, and politics. It is true that philology, the truth of fact or certitude, had not always been so brutally treated as it was by the Cartesians. Grotius had given evidence of immense historical learning employed on behalf of his doctrine of natural right. Gravina, Vico's contemporary and fellow- countryman, demanded as necessary to the student of law not only " the art of reasoning " (ratiocinandi ars) but " skill in the Latin tongue " (Latinae linguae peritia] and " knowledge of history " (notitia temporum). And Leibniz, whom we have just named, reasserted the value of learning as against the Cartesians, and extended his patronage, en grand seigneur, to the varied collection of historical 32 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO anecdotes which he scattered freely over his pages. But Vico observed that the philosophy and philology of his time always remained external to one another, as they had been almost entirely in Greece and Rome. All the quotations from historians, orators, philosophers, and poets accumulated by Grotius were a mere embellishment. Perhaps Vico would have passed the same judgment upon the liberal use made of history by Leibniz, if he had known of it and expressed his opinion. In reading the works of philologists he was conscious of such a sense of vacuity and weariness in the unintelligent jumble of historical observations, that he was almost led to agree with Descartes and Malebranche in their hatred of scholarship : for a time, in fact, he did entirely agree with them. But these two philosophers so his later thought ran ought, instead of despising erudition, rather to have asked whether it were possible to reclaim philology to philosophical principles ; and the philolo- gists for their part, instead of marshalling facts for a display of learning, ought to strive to make them the aim of science. Philology must be reduced to a science. This was Vico's idea of the relation of certitude to truth, or philology to philosophy. What was the meaning of reducing philology, or history, which is the same thing, to a science or philosophy ? Strictly speaking, the reduction is impossible : not because they deal with subject-matter different in kind, but because their subject-matter is in point of fact homo- geneous. History is already essentially philosophy. It is impossible to make the most insignificant historical statement without moulding it with thought, that is with philosophy. But since the existence of this philo- sophical basis of philology was not at that time realised, indeed it was none too often realised in later times, and in consequence easily denied ; and since most people, as we have seen, imagined either an aristocratic geometrical VIC&S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE: SECOND PHASE 33 philosophy, hating and avoiding the " profane mob " of facts, or else, as at first Vico did, a philosophy and a history equally devoid of cogency, and merely matters of opinion : for these reasons Vico, after the change of his philosophical point of view, now that he had attained to the consciousness of the speculative method in the science of man, and understood more deeply the human mind, was bound to see how much current history stood in need of reform and extension ; to feel the lack of an improved philology as a consequence of the improved philosophy, and to express it in terms of the theory of knowledge by the formula reuniting philology to philo- sophy : " that this second science, as is fair, should be the consequence of the first " (ut haec posterior, ut par est, prioris sit consequentia) . He was bound, in other words, to rescue history from its condition of inferiority, where it was a mere slave to caprice, vanity, moralising and precept-making, and other irrelevant aims, and to recog- nise its own true end as a necessary complement of eternal truth. Philosophy nowadays is full of and intimate with historical fact : and this gives it greater breadth and a more lively sense of dealing with concrete reality. This is no doubt one meaning of Vice's formula concerning the union of philosophy and philology, and the reduction of the latter to a science. It is, however, certain that in propounding this formula he had in view a further and, as often happened, a different meaning. This other meaning might be most simply illustrated by comparing it, as Vico himself did with Bacon and his " more certain method of philosophising " : that method which Bacon expressed in the title of his work by the words Cogitata et visa, and Vico proposed to " transfer from the natural to the human or political world." In a word, he demanded the construction of a typical history of human society (cogitare) which was then to be discovered in the facts (videre). Thus the ideal D 34 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO construction would acquire certainty from the facts, and the facts truth from the ideal construction : authority would be confirmed by reason and reason by authority. He demanded a science which should be at once a philo- sophy of man and a universal history of nations. Now this structure which he required something intermediate between cogitare and videre, thought and experience, this mixture of the two processes is intrinsically different from the unity of philosophy and philology, in so far as that is a philosophical interpretation of factual data. Such an interpretation is living history : the other is neither philosophy nor history, but an empirical science of man and society, drawing its materials from schemata which are neither the extra-temporal categories of philo- sophy nor the individual facts of history : although it can never be constructed without philosophical cate- gories and historical facts. It is an empirical science ; and as such, neither exact nor true, but only approxi- mative and probable, and subject to verification and correction from the side both of philosophy and of history. It would be impossible to decide either which of these two meanings of philology reduced to history is that of Vico himself, since both are included in his thought : or which is the prevailing one, since in point of fact now one, now the other prevails : although the second, or empirical, signification is the more often formulated. We might even say that when Vico entitled his treatise Scienza Nuova, the principal meaning he attached to this " invidious " name referred precisely to this empirical science, the science, that is, which was to be at once a philosophy and a history of man : the ideal history of the eternal laws which govern the course of all nations' deeds in their rise, progress, points of rest, decline and fall. The fact is, Vico did not and could not unify the two different meanings ; he maintained the duality which, simply because it was never made explicit, VlCCfS THE OR Y OF KNO W LEDGE : SECOND PHASE 33 presented an appearance of unity. Thus each of the tendencies shown by his interpreters is partially justified : one group of whom maintain that Vico laid down and employed the speculative method; another, that his pro- cedure was both in intention and in effect empirical, inductive and psychological : the former believing that he aimed at a systematic philosophy of man, the latter that he was bent upon a scheme of sociology or social psychology. Both views are one-sided, but the second more so than the first. If there actually were in Vico elements both of Bacon and of Plato, of the empiricist and the philosopher, yet when we look at his intellectual personality as a whole, when we penetrate into the depths of his mind and share in his difficulties and his colossal labours, we must recognise that whatever he meant and believed Vico was of the stuff of a Plato and not a Bacon : that even the Bacon of whom he speaks is in part his own invention, a Bacon tinged with Platonism : and that the New Science seemed so new to him fundamentally, not because it was an empirical structure on Bacon's lines indeed in that case no science could be older : we need only cite Aristotle's Politics and Machiavelli's Discourses, but because it was impregnated throughout by a new philosophy, which did in truth break into it on every side, through all his empiricism. CHAPTER III INTERNAL STRUCTURE OF THE NEW SCIENCE THE lack of clearness on the relation of philosophy to philology, and the failure to distinguish between the two quite different ways of conceiving the reduction of philology to a science, are at once the consequences and the causes of the obscurity which prevails in the " New Science." By this name we refer to the whole mass of research and theory which Vico was producing from 1720 to 1730, elaborated above all in three works, the De uno universi iuris principio et fine uno and the first and second Scienza Nuova ; it attains its maturest and most developed form in the last of these, and this is the most important for reference. The New Science, agreeably to the various meanings of the terms philosophy and philology and of the relation between them, consists of three groups of investigations, philosophical, historical and empirical. Altogether it contains a philosophy of mind, a history, or group of histories, and a social science. To the first namefl belong the ideas expressed in various axioms or aphorisms scattered up and down the work, on imagination and the imaginative universal, on the intellect and the logical universal, on myth, religion, the moral judgment, force and law, certitude and truth, the passions, providence, and all the other determinations affecting the course or development of the thought or mind of man. To the 36 INTERNAL STRUCTURE OF THE NEW SCIENCE 37 second, namely history, belong the sketch of a universal history of primitive peoples from the time of the Flood, and of the origins of the various civilisations : the description of the ancient barbaric or heroic society in Greece and especially in Rome, with regard to religion, customs, law, language and political constitution : the study of primitive poetry, concentrating upon the deter- mination of the genesis and character of the Homeric poems : the history of the social struggles between the patricians and plebeians and the origin of democracy, also studied chiefly in Rome : and the description of the return of barbarism or the Middle Ages, also studied in all aspects of life and compared with primitive barbaric society. Finally, to empirical science belongs the attempt to establish a uniform course of national history, dealing with the succession both of political forms and of other correlative manifestations of life both theoretical and practical, and the series of types successively drawn by Vico of the patriciate, the plebs, feudalism, the patri- archal family, symbolic law, metaphorical language, hieroglyphic writing and so forth. Now if these three classes of inquiry and theory had been logically distinct in Vice's mind and united and compressed within the limits of a single book for literary reasons alone, the result might have been confused, ill- proportioned, out of harmony, and therefore fatiguing to the reader, but not obscure. But in point of fact it cannot be said that the Scienza Nuova, at least in its second form, the final exposition of his thought given by Vico, lacks a general plan, well enough conceived. The treatise is divided into five books. The first is in- tended to summarise general principles, that is, philosophy. The second, in addition to a short note on the most ancient universal history, describes the life of barbaric society, to which the third, on the discovery of the true Homer, the most conspicuous example of barbaric poetry, forms 38 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO an appendix. The fourth is meant to sketch the empirical science of the movement of national history : and the fifth to exemplify the movement of "reflux" in the particular case of the Middle Ages. And yet, in spite of this fine architectonic scheme, the second Scienza Nuova is the most obscure, just as it is the most rich and complete of Vico's works. If on the other hand, while keeping his ideas clear in his mind, Vico had used an unfamiliar terminology or a style of exposition either too compressed or too full of allusions or implicit presuppositions, he would certainly have been a difficult writer, but in this case, as in the other, not obscure. But such a hypothesis does not suit the facts. Vico is very sparing of scholastic language ; he prefers living and popular terminology. He is not compressed : in fact, he is fond of repeating his ideas, emphasising them by repetition with great insistence. And he lays all his cards on the table : that is to say, he shows all the material by which his doctrines have been suggested. Finally, it amounts to very little to say that Vico was not fully conscious of his own dis- coveries : such consciousness is more or less deficient in every thinker, and in fact none could have it more fully. The obscurity, the real obscurity which we find in Vico is not superficial. It does not come either from merely general or from secondary causes. It really consists in the obscurity of his ideas ; in his insufficient under- standing of certain connections, and the substitution for them of fallacious ones ; in the arbitrary element, that is, which he introduces into his thought, or to put it more simply in his own downright errors. One might re- write the New Science, recasting the order and changing and elucidating the terminology the present writer has made the attempt for himself and still the obscurity would remain, or even increase ; for in such a translation the work in losing its original form would lose also the turbid but powerful strength which may at times take INTERNAL STRUCTURE OF THE NEW SCIENCE 39 the place of clarity, and, while it does not illuminate, stirs the reader's mind and generates waves of thought as it were by sympathetic vibrations. That Vico's obscurity, his mistake or mistakes, is due to the confusion or lack of distinction in his theory of knowledge mentioned above, on the question of the relations between philosophy, history and empirical science a confusion which exists no less in his actual thought on the problems of the mind and history of man that this is so can be seen by observing how philosophy, history and empirical science pass into each other by turns in Vico's mind, and vitiating each other in turn produce the perplexities, ambiguities, exaggerations and hasty statements which perturb the reader of the New Science. The philosophy of mind masquerades now as empirical science, now as history : empirical science now as philosophy, now as history : and historical propositions assume the universality of philosophical principles or the generality of empirical schemata. For example, the philosophy of man undertakes to determine the forms, categories or ideal moments of mind in their necessary succession, and in this aspect it well deserves the title or definition of " eternal ideal history " according to which particular histories proceed in time ; while no fragment however small of actual history can be conceived in which this ideal history is not present. But, since ideal history is also for Vico the empirical determination of the order in which the forms of civilisations, states, languages, styles, and kinds of poetry succeed one another, it comes about that he conceives the empirical series as identical with the ideal series, and as deriving validity from it. Hence he asserts that this series must always be exactly reproduced in the facts, " even if infinite worlds were produced from time to time through eternity " : an assertion which is plainly false, since there is no reason why the empirical fact of Greek or Roman aristocracy 40 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO should be repeated for ever, with a " must have been, must be now, must be hereafter " ; or why civilisations should rise and fall precisely as did those of antiquity. And this very treatment of the empirical course of events as absolute threw a shadow of empiricism over their ideal course ; since the latter once identified with the former took over its empirical and temporal character instead of the eternal and extra - temporal character which it had as originally conceived. The same must be said of the various forms of mind which, as ideal and extra - temporal, are always all present in every fact ; but Vico, by confusing them with the real and concrete facts which empirical science splits up into its schemata, destroyed them in their ideal form and distinction as soon as he had stated them. It is true that the moment of force is not that of justice ; but the empirical type of barbaric society founded upon force, precisely because it is a representative and approximative determination, and is referred to a concrete and total state of things, con- tains not only force but justice as well ; and when this ideal moment and this type of society are interchanged and treated as identical, on the one hand the philosophical concept of force is confused with that of justice and becomes impure, contradictory and incoherent, and finally annuls itself : on the other, the empirical type of barbaric society becomes exaggerated and unduly rigid. The confusion between the philosophic and the empirical is clearly expressed in Vico's aphorism defining the nature of things. " Nature of things is nothing else than their production at certain times and in certain manners : and whenever these latter are of such a kind, then the things produced are of such a kind and no other." Here we see the confusion between time and manner, between ideal and empirical genesis. Similarly, it is perfectly true that history ought to proceed in harmony with philosophy, and that a philosophical absurdity can never INTERNAL STRUCTURE OF THE NEW SCIENCE 41 be a historical event : but, since the distinction between philosophy and empirical science was not drawn by Vico, when evidence was lacking and philosophy therefore inapplicable he felt no less sure of attaining truth. He merely filled the gap with a conjecture supplied by the schema of empirical science, and persuaded himself that he had fallen back on a " metaphysical proof." Or again, if he found himself faced by uncertain facts, instead of patiently waiting till the discovery of further evidence should dispel the doubt, he cut the knot by accepting the facts, as he put it, in conformity with laws : which always means the empirical schema. A legitimate method, doubtless, when treated as hypothetical. But this hypothesis became in its turn, for Vico, a " truth meditated in the idea " : so that the comparison with facts, which none the less he recommends for the sake of confirmation, became strictly speaking superfluous : or, if the com- parison showed that the facts disagreed with it, the facts, as mere appearance, must be in the wrong, rather than the hypothesis, which is laid down as philosophical truth, and therefore indubitable. Hence arises the tendency observed in Vico to do violence to the facts. These examples are enough to indicate the deep- seated fault in the structure of the New Science, and to establish one point in our exposition and criticism of Vico's thought, in the course of which many other examples of the same point will arise of themselves, and those already given will become more clear. But another point which must be well established is that this fault is the fault of an organism in the highest degree healthy, and that the different species of inquiry between which Vico failed to distinguish were composed of investigations of extraordinary originality, truth, and importance. It is in fact the fault often found in highly original and in- ventive intellects, which seldom work out their discoveries in accurate detail, while less inventive minds are generally 42 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO more precise and logical. Depth and acuteness do not always flourish equally side by side : and Vico, however much he fell short in acuteness, was always profoundly deep. Light and shade, truth and error, which alternate and interweave at almost every point in the New Science, are variously distinguished according to the various tempera- ments of readers and critics : and in conspicuous cases, like that of Vico, such variations assume the most sharply denned form. Some minds are self-willed and suspicious, quick to mark any trifling contradiction, merciless in demanding proof of every statement, and indefatigable in wielding the forceps of dilemma to dismember an un- fortunate great man. For them Vico's work, like many others of the same kind, is a closed book. At most, it will provide them with a theme for what is known as a " refuta- tion" : an easy and congenial task, yet hardly a successful one, since the man they have demolished generally emerges from the slaughter more alive than before. But there is another type of mind, which, at the first word which reaches the heart, at the first ray of truth which dawns upon the eyes, opens its whole self in desire, abandons itself in faith, and grows wild with enthusiasm ; which refuses to hear of faults and never sees difficulties, or the difficulties at once vanish, and the faults find the easiest of justifications : and when it commits itself to writing, its writings appear in the guise of " defences." For such a mind we fear that the New Science is a book all too open. No doubt, if these two attitudes were the only alternatives, if no third choice were open, one would have to choose the fault of love rather than that of cold indifference ; the excess of faith, which may yet enrich us by one or two aspects of the truth, rather than the absence of faith which never lets us realise one. But a third attitude is possible to, and indeed incumbent on the critic ; namely, that which never takes its eyes off INTERNAL STRUCTURE OF THE NEW SCIENCE 43 the light, but yet does not conceal the shade ; which transcends the letter to attain the spirit, yet not ignoring the letter, but always returning to it, always endeavouring to play the part of a free but not a fanciful interpreter, a warm lover but not a blind one. The two points above established, the strength and weakness essential to Vico's intellect, his tendency to confusion or his confusion of tendencies, supply us with a kind of general canon of interpretation ; namely, that of separating analytically at every step his pure philosophy from the empiricism and history with which he mixes, and in which so to speak he embodies it, and on the other hand separating the latter from the former : and of observing, in the process, the causes and effects of the mixture. The dross cannot be treated as non-existent, bound up as it is with the gold in its natural state : but it must not hinder us from recognising and purifying the gold. Or, to drop the metaphor, the history must be indeed a history, but that it can only be if guided by intelligence. CHAPTER IV THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE (POETRY AND LANGUAGE) THE chief, almost indeed the only, forms of the mind studied by Vico in the New Science are the inferior, individualising activities to which he gives the general name of " certitude." These are, in the region of theoretic mind, imagination : in that of the practical mind, power or will : and in the empirical science corresponding to the philosophy of mind, the barbaric society and poetic wisdom whose examination occupies, in his own words, " almost the whole bulk of the work." His deep interest in these lower forms, and in the primitive societies and barbaric histories which display them, is further illustrated and explained, among his external circumstances, by the studies he under- took in Roman law and its expressions and rhetorical figures : by the still living tradition of Italian humanism : by the recently stimulated pursuit of the archaeological sciences : by his own desire to investigate the earliest civilisation of Italy, and so forth. But many of his contemporaries and countrymen were handling the same materials without acquiring any of his taste for and com- prehension of imagination, simplicity and force : indeed Vico himself, when he wrote the De antiquissima, had the taste for these things but as yet no comprehension of them. The full reason for this interest is seen when we 44 THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE 45 consider the development of Vico as a philosopher, without losing sight of the complexity of his nature in all its opposition to the Cartesian type of mind. Cartesianism, with its attention confined to the universalising and abstractive forms, ignored the individualising : and this necessarily attracted Vico all the more towards them as towards a mysterious problem. Cartesianism shrank in horror from the tangled forest of history : Vico plunged eagerly into that very department of history where the historical flavour, so to speak, is strongest ; namely, that which is furthest and psychologically most different from civilised periods. Cartesianism extended the psy- chology of civilisation to all periods and nations : Vico was led to investigate in all their profound divergencies and contradictions the modes of feeling and thought proper to various times. The great effort which had to be made, and actually was made by Vico, in order to penetrate through modern intellectualism and recapture the point of view of primi- tive psychology, is expressed in his language about the " grave difficulties " entailed by his " labour of fully twenty-five years " in the attempt to " stoop from these civilised natures of ours to those absolutely wild and savage minds, which we cannot picture to ourselves at all, and can only understand with great toil/' It is expressed again, rather differently, by his insistence on the impossibility, now that, even with the common people, the mind of man is too completely separated from the senses, accustomed to the free use of abstract terms, sharpened by the art of writing, and spiritualised so to speak by the employment of numbers, the impossi- bility of entering into the chaotic fancy of primitive man, whose mind was the very reverse of abstract, acute or spiritual; but rather sunk in the senses, blunted by passion, and buried in the body : and of grasping such ideas as that of the " sympathy of nature." This necessary effort 46 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO a painful one, but successful was another reason for his feeling that his science was " new." He says indeed that this study of the ideal form and the historic period of certitude was entirely lacking to Greek philosophy as a whole. Plato had attempted it in the Cratylus, but unsuccessfully, because he knew nothing of the language of the first legislators, the heroic poets, and was deceived by the altered and modernised forms under which the laws existed in his time after continual revision at Athens. Among the moderns, J. C. Scaliger, Francisco Sanchez and Caspar Schopp had fallen into a similar mistake when they attempted to explain language by the principles of logic, and indeed of Aristotelian logic, in spite of its having arisen centuries after language itself. Grotius, Selden, Puffendorf and the other writers on natural rights also studied human nature as civilised by religion and law ; so that in retracing the course of history they began in the middle : that is to say, they confined themselves to the intellect, ignoring the imagination, and to the will under moral restraint, passing over the undisciplined passions. Vico himself, while he had shown his interest in this problem by undertaking to investigate the " most ancient wisdom of Italy," was yet led astray in his study by following the lead of the author of the Cratylus. In its philosophical aspect, the New Science might, owing to this prominence given to the study of the indi- vidualising forms, above all the imagination (since the doctrine that primitive man is a poet and thinks in poetic images is in Vice's words the " master key " of the work) be called, without undue paradox, a philosophy of Mind with special attention to the Philosophy of Imagination or Aesthetic. Aesthetic may in fact be considered as a discovery of Vice's, though with the reservations to which the deter- mination of discoveries and discoverers is always subject ; and although he did not deal with it in a separate treatise THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE 47 or give it the happy title with which Baumgarten christened it ten years or so later. It is interesting however to notice that the terminology of the New Science lights upon a name similar to one of the equivalents for Aesthetic which Baumgarten passes in review ; namely that of " the Logic of Poetry." But ultimately the name matters little : what does matter is the fact : and the fact is that Vico adopted a theory of poetry which was then and was still for a time to be a bold and revolutionary innovation. At that time, as is well known, the old practical or didactic theory held the field : the theory which, starting late in the history of the ancient world, persisting through the Middle Ages, and transplanted into the Renaissance, regarded poetry as an ingenious disguise for the popular- ising of lofty philosophical and theological ideas. Beside this theory, though inferior in authority, stood another, which considered poetry as the product of or means to diversion and pleasure. These views had come to alter the original meaning of the Aristotelian treatise on poetry, so as to be at last introduced into it and discovered there as if Aristotle himself had held and written them. Nor was this mistake corrected by Cartesianism, which, as we should expect from its general direction, rather tended to enfeeble and annul the very object of these definitions, as a thing of no value, or practically none. At a time when philosophers were trying to reduce metaphysics and ethics to a mathematical form, and despised concrete intuition: when men were devising a literature and a poetry suited to disseminate science among the common people or the world of fashion : when experiments were being made in the construction of artificial, logical languages, superior to those of past or present usage : when, finally, it was thought possible to lay down rules for composing musical airs without being a musician, and poems without being a poet : in this atmosphere of detachment, coolness, hostility and mockery, only a miracle could arouse a 48 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO different and indeed opposite feeling a warm and vivid consciousness of the real nature of poetry in its original function : and this miracle was worked by the keen, restless and stormy mind of Giambattista Vico. He criticised at once the three doctrines of poetry as a means of adorning and communicating intellectual truth, as merely subservient to pleasure, and as a harmless mental exercise for those who can do it. Poetry is not esoteric wisdom : it does not presuppose the logic of the intellect : it does not contain philosophical judgments. The philosophers, in finding these things in poetry, have simply put them there themselves without realising it. Poetry is produced not by the mere caprice of pleasure, but by natural necessity. It is so far from being super- fluous and capable of elimination, that without it thought cannot arise : it is the primary activity of the human mind. Man, before he has arrived at the stage of forming universals, forms imaginary ideas. Before he reflects with a clear mind, he apprehends with faculties confused and disturbed : before he can articulate, he sings : before speaking in prose, he speaks in verse : before using technical terms, he uses metaphors, and the metaphorical use of words is as natural to him as that which we call " natural." So far from being a fashion of expounding metaphysics poetry is distinct from and opposed to metaphysics. The one frees the intellect from the senses, the other submerges and overwhelms it in them : the one reaches perfection in proportion as it rises to universality, the other, as it confines itself to the particular : the one enfeebles the imagination, the other strengthens it. The one takes precautions against turning the mind into body, the other delights in giving body to the mind. The judg- ments of poetry are composed of sense and emotion, those of philosophy are composed of reflection, which if intro- duced into poetry makes it frigid and unreal : and no one jn the whole course of history has ever been at once a THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE 49 great poet and a great metaphysician. Poets and philo- sophers may be called respectively the senses and the intellect of mankind : and in this sense we may retain as true the scholastic saying " there is nothing in the intellect which was not first in the senses." Without sense, we cannot have intellect : without poetry, we cannot have philosophy, nor indeed any civilisation. Almost more miraculous than this conception of poetry is the fact that Vico saw into the true nature of language, a problem much less canvassed and investigated, and no more satisfactorily solved, by ancient and modern philosophy down to the present day. Language was as a rule alternately confused with logic and debased into a mere external and conventional sign, or else in despair referred to a divine origin. Vico realised that the divine origin was in this case a mere refuge of indolence ; that language is neither logic nor convention, and, like poetry, is neither esoteric wisdom nor due to a decision or agree- ment. Language arises naturally. In its first form, men express themselves " by mute actions," or by signs, and " by bodies having natural connexions with the ideas which they wish to indicate," i.e. by means of symbolic objects. But in the case both of articulated languages and of common speech, all philologists have, " with an excess of good faith," which means a deficiency of insight, accepted the view that meanings are decided at pleasure : whereas at the so-called origin of language meanings must have been natural, and every common word must certainly have started from one single individual of one nation, and been derived from the primitive language of gestures and objects. In Latin, as in other tongues, it is to be noticed that almost all the words are formed to express natural properties, or used by transference : and the greater part of every language, in every nation, is metaphorical. The opposite opinion was due to the ignorance of grammarians, who, meeting with a great 50 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTJSTA VICO number of words expressing confused and indistinct ideas, and not knowing their origin, which had formerly made them lucid and distinct, invented for their own peace of mind the conventional theory ; and dragged in Aristotle and Galen as against Plato and lamblichus. The serious objection generally brought against the natural origin of language and in favour of the conventional, namely the variations in the common speech among different nations, is solved by considering that owing to diversities of climate, temperament and custom nations looked at the same useful or necessary objects in different aspects, and hence produced different languages. This is also seen in the case of proverbs ; which are substan- tially identical maxims of human life, but expressed in as many different forms as there are, or have been, different nations. The insistence, then, with which Vico claims to have discovered the true origin of languages " in the principles of poetry" is of especial importance. On the one hand, it entails the assertion of the spontaneous and imaginative origin of language, and on the other it tends implicitly if not explicitly to suppress the dualism between poetry and language. In these principles of poetry Vico found not only the origin of languages, but also that of letters or writing. He pronounced the separation of the two origins, connected as they were by nature and appearing, in the primitive dumb language of signs and objects, as identical, to be a mere mistake of the grammarians. Here again, it is no case of esoteric wisdom or convention. Hieroglyphics were not invented by philosophers as a means of concealing the mysteries of their lofty thoughts: they were a universal and natural necessity to all primitive peoples : and only the alphabetic scripts arose among nations by a free agreement. In other words Vico drew a distinction (though in a confused manner) within the so-called scripts, between those which are true scripts and therefore con- THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE 51 ventional, and others which are directly expressive and are therefore language, story-telling, poetry and painting. These expressive scripts or languages are characterised by the inseparability of content from form. They are poetical just in the sense that the story and its expression are one and the same thing, namely a metaphor common to poetry and painting, so that it could be depicted by a dumb man without verbal expression. As examples, Vico quotes traditional anecdotes ; for instance, the five " real words " (the frog, the mouse, the bird, the ploughshare and the bow) sent by Idanturas king of the Scythians to Darius when the latter had declared war on him : and the parable of the tall poppies which King Tarquin enacted before the eyes of his son Sextus's am- bassador, concerning the means of ruling Gabii methods of expression parallel to practices still found among savages and the lower classes : and in addition to these, heraldry, flags, and the emblems upon medals and coins. There is a frivolous legend which belittles and degrades the true value of heraldry by asserting it to have been invented in German tournaments as a custom of gallantry by young men seeking to win the love of noble maidens. But in the Middle Ages heraldry was a serious thing. It was, so to speak, the hieroglyphic script of the period : a wordless language to eke out the poverty of ordinary speech and alphabetic writing. It was only later, in times of culture, that it became a sport and a pleasure, and gallant and learned blazonings were adopted which had to be enlivened by means of mottoes because their own meaning was now merely analogical ; while primitive and natural heraldry was dumb, or rather spoke without needing an interpreter. Even in the days of culture a few such expressive forms retained this simplicity and naturalness. Flags or ensigns for instance form a kind of armed language with which nations, as if deprived of speech, make themselves understood in the wider affairs 52 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO of the natural rights of peoples ; wars, alliances and commerce. Thus in the light of Vico's aesthetical idea poetry, words, metaphors, writing and graphic symbols are all illuminated and spring to life : great things and small, epic poetry and heraldry. The doctrine of imaginary forms was quite a new departure in the history of ideas : for while Vico opposed his own conceptions to those of the contemporary schools, especially the Cartesian, he by no means attached himself to any other more or less remote school or tradition. He himself felt that he was opposed not to a particular school but to all who had ever formulated doctrines on the subject. He says that he has " overturned " all the theories about poetry held by Plato, Aristotle, and so on down to Patrizio, Scaliger and Castelvetro in modern times, all of whom had lost themselves in ineptitudes which " even to mention makes one ashamed." Patrizio made poetry begin with the songs of birds and the whistling of the wind ! As regards language, he had been ultimately dissatisfied both with Plato and with the moderns Wolfgang Latius, Scaliger and Sanchez. As regards writing, once the theory of divine origin supported by Mallinkrot and Ingewald Eling was refuted, or rather interpreted in his own way, which came to the same thing, he made an attempt to discredit the futile, vague, ill-founded, mis- shapen, pompous and absurd opinions which derived it from the Goths and through them from Adam and per- sonal instruction from God, or more directly from the Earthly Paradise, or from a Gothic Mercury as inventor. Finally, as to heraldry, he remarks that the writers on the subject have never understood anything about it, and have only by a mere random guess let fall a hint of the truth in calling it " heroic." In fact it would be hard to find real and true precedents for Vico's aesthetic conceptions. At most, we might THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE 53 indicate vague suggestions contained in various scattered statements which he collects : a certain immediate stimulus in the discussions of the seventeenth century on the distinctions between intellect and genius, reason and imagination, dialectic and rhetoric : and a certain convergence of external particulars, such as the col- lection of rhetorical subtleties expressed in subtleties of language, made by Tesauro, a rhetorician of the time. These conceptions, however, produced as they were by a remarkable stroke of originality, no sooner passed from general outline to particular determinations, from the first idea or inspiration to concrete development, than they appear to become confused, fluctuating and unstable. We may set aside the various opinions suc- cessively held by Vico, and bound up with the historical growth of his mind, upon the subjects of poetry, language or metaphor, beginning with his academic orations, pass- ing thence by way of the De ratione and De antiquissima to the Diritto universale, from these to the first and thence to the second Scienza Nuova : a study of these might supply subject-matter for a special essay, but does not come within the scope of our treatise. But even in the final form of his aesthetic thought, contradictory doctrines exist side by side. He is not content with saying, as he does say, that poetical form is the primary activity of the mind ; that it is composed of feelings of emotion ; and that it is entirely imaginative and devoid of concepts and reflection. He goes on to add that poetry, as opposed to history, " represents reality in its best idea," and there- fore fulfils the justice and gives every man the reward or punishment which he does not always get in history, governed as the latter often is by caprice, necessity and chance. Again, he says that the end of poetry is "to give life to the lifeless," since its most sublime task is the attempt to give life and sensation to insensible objects. 54 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO He says that poetry is " nothing but imitation " ; that children, with their great imitative powers, are poets ; and that primitive races, the children of mankind, were also sublime poets. He says that poetry has for its special subject-matter " the impossible made credible " : for instance, it is impossible that body should be mind, and yet it was believed that the thundering sky was Jupiter. Hence the miracles performed by magicians by means of incantations were a favourite subject of poetry. He says that poetry is due to " poverty," that is, that it is a pathological product of the mind. Since uncivilised man is of low brain-power and cannot satisfy the thirst he feels for the general and the universal, he fills their place by inventing imaginary genera, poetical universals or characters. Consequently the truth of the poet is identical with the truth of the philosopher : the one abstract, the other clothed in images : the one a metaphysic of reason, the other a metaphysic of feeling and fancy, suited to the understanding of the people. From poverty also, that is from inability to articulate, arises song, and therefore mutes and stammerers utter sounds which are songs : and metaphor arises from inability to express things in an accurate manner. He says, finally, that the aim of poetry is to teach the people to act virtuously. These sayings indicate very various ideas about poetry, of which some are compatible with the central doctrine but thrown out in a disconnected manner and therefore not in fact reconciled with it : others are quite incom- patible. Vico might have been cited in turn, on the testimony of single passages, as a supporter of the moralistic theory of art, the didactic theory, the abstract or typical theory, the mythological theory, the animistic theory, and so on. And if he neither falls back into the old theories he hated, nor loses himself among the new fallacies which followed him, it is due to the fact that all these waverings and inconsistencies were continually submerged by the THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE SS thought that poetry is the primary form of the mind, prior to intellect and free from reflection and reasoning. Just as he was unable by the use of his leading principle to distinguish and reconcile the other theories on the nature of poetry which already existed or had been in- vented by himself, so he did not succeed in escaping from the tyranny of old or new empirical classifications. He struggled to reduce these in their turn to philosophical form, and tried to deduce successively the various kinds of poetry, epic, lyric and dramatic : the kinds of verse and metre, spondaic, iambic and prose : the kinds of figurative language, metaphor, metonymy, synecdoche and irony : the parts of speech, onomatopoeism, inter- jection, pronoun, particle, noun and verb : the moods and tenses of the verb (in which connexion he refers to a case of aphasia observed by himself in Naples, " a gentleman seized with a severe apoplexy, who utters nouns but has completely forgotten verbs " ) : the kinds of writing, hieroglyphic, symbolic and alphabetical : and of languages, according to their increasing complexity, from monosyllables to compound words and from a preponderance of vowels and diphthongs to a preponder- ance of consonants. In the course of these attempts he frequently offered new and sometimes correct interpre- tations of isolated facts : but he did not and could not connect them into a scientific system. Moreover he never realised the relation between poetry and the other arts. On the one hand, he unites them, as when he con- siders painting and poetry to be fundamentally identical and notes a number of analogies between the poetry and painting of the Middle Ages : on the other, he separates them sharply, as when he asserts that delicacy in art is the outcome of philosophy, and that painting, sculpture, casting and intaglio are the most delicate arts because they are compelled to abstract the surface of the material objects they represent. j6 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO These inconsistencies and errors which we have briefly reviewed are due partly to Vice's insufficient power of distinguishing and elaborating, partly and this is the greater part to that fundamental fault which we have already seen to exist in the structure of the New Science. In this case the fault is, more precisely, Vico's confusion between the philosophical concept of the poetic form of the mind, and the empirical concept of the barbaric form of civilisation. "This earliest age of the world," as he himself says, " can be truly said to have concerned itself exclusively with the primary activity of the mind." But the earliest age of the world, composed as it was of men of flesh and blood, not of philosophical categories, cannot have been concerned with one solitary activity of the mind. This single activity may have preponderated, as we generally say : the very word reveals the quanti- tative and approximative nature of the conception : but all the others must have been at work simultaneously, imagination and intellect, perception and abstraction, will and morality, song and arithmetic. Vico could not shut his eyes to this obvious fact, and introduced into this phase of civilisation not only the poet, but also the theologian, the physicist, the astronomer, the pater- familias, the warrior, the politician, and the lawgiver ; but he tried to regard the activities of all these as "poetical" in character, as he called it, by a metaphor drawn from the alleged preponderance of the imaginative form of the mind ; and the whole system he called " poetic wisdom." The metaphorical nature of the terminology is suggested, in fact leaps to the eye, in certain characteristic passages, as where the "arts," that is, the mechanical crafts which produce objects of practical utility, are called " poetry with a certain kind of reality," and where ancient Roman law, because of the abundance of formulae and ceremonies with which it was adorned, is said to be a "serious dramatic poem." But the metaphors are dangerous, since, as THE IMAGINATIVE FORM OF KNOWLEDGE 57 in the case of the New Science, they light upon a soil favourable to their growth into concepts : and in point of fact the historical phase of barbarism, meta- phorically expressed as poetic wisdom, soon turned in Vice's mind into the ideal phase of poetry, and trans- ferred all its own attributes to this ideal phase. The former included theologians, and accordingly Vico re- garded poetry as theology, but an imaginative theology : teachers, and poetry became a teacher, but of the common people : natural scientists, and it became science, but the science of an imaginary world. And since these bar- barians, uncultivated as they were and confined to the world of images, could not think in concepts, the imagin- ations of poetry, individualised and particular, and its judgments, always expressed in material form, were falsely interpreted as " imaginative universals," supposed to be something intermediate between the individualising intuition and the universalising concept. Poetry, which ought to represent sense and nothing else, came to repre- sent a sense already intellectualised ; and the saying that nothing is found in the intellect that has not already been in the sense, acquired the meaning, that the intellect is nothing but the sense clarified, and the sense nothing but the intellect confused. Thus there was no further need for the added caution " except the intellect itself " (nisi intellectus ipse). Conversely, barbaric civilisation became a kind of mythological or allegorical representation of the ideal phase of poetry, and primitive tribes were transformed into crowds of " sublime poets " just as, in the ontogenesis corresponding to this philogenesis, children had been made into poets. The concept of the " imaginative universal " unites in itself the double con- tradiction of the doctrine ; since to the imaginative element must be joined, in this mental construction, the element of universality which taken by itself would be a true and proper universal, rational and not imagina- jS TREA TMENT OF HISTOR Y 151 of these resemblances ; but without the perception of the resemblances how could we ever determine the differences ? Dante is not Homer, the barons are not the " patres," the Athenian Solon is not the Roman Publilius Philo ; but certainly Dante is in some respects more closely related to Homer than to Petrarch, the early barons are nearer to the " patres " than to the later courtier-nobles, and Solon is more akin to a Roman tribune or dictator than to any other of the seven sages among whom he is usually placed. To observe these resemblances means denying or rejecting other more superficial ones, and preparing the way for knowledge of individuality by indicating the approximate place where the truth is to be found. Vico classifies, rather than narrates and represents ; but there is classification and classification ; it may be pressed into the service of a superficial thought or of a profound one. And the historical side of the New Science is one great substitution of profound for super- ficial classifications. In this process, which constitutes the strength of Vico's treatment of history, the deficiencies and errors come not from outside the limits of the process but from causes at work within these limits themselves. It has been alleged in defence of Vico that a great part of his errors is due to the scantiness and inadequacy of the materials at his disposal. But the materials for any study are always scanty and inadequate compared to our thirst for knowledge ; and in judging a historian the question is not this, but the method, cautious or incautious, on which he employs the materials that are at his disposal. Again, it has been said that Vico has the faults of his age ; but this is to forget that he was born in the century which saw the development of the highly critical philology of Joseph Scaliger and the whole Dutch school, and that Zeno, Maffei and Muratori were his contemporaries in Italy. The truth is that just as the attitude of thought 152 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO already described in Vico confused pure philosophical method with the determinations of empirical science and historical data, so it confused historical research with the mixture of philosophy and empirical science. Vico was in a state similar to that of drunkenness ; con- fusing categories with facts, he felt absolutely certain a priori of what the facts would say : instead of letting them speak for themselves he put his own words into their mouth. A common illusion with him was to seem to see connexions between things where there was really none. This made him turn every hypothetical con- junction into a certainty, and read in other writers instead of their actual words things that they had never written, but which were internally spoken by himself unawares and projected into the writings of others. Exactitude was for him an impossibility, and in his mental excitement and exaltation he almost despised it : what harm can ten, twenty, a hundred errors do to what is substantially true ? Exactitude, " diligence," as he says, " must lose itself in arguments of any size, because it is a minute, and because minute also a slow-footed virtue." Fanciful etymologies, daring and groundless mythological interpretations, changes of name and date, exaggerations of fact, false quotations are met with throughout his pages, and many may be found noted in the fine edition of the second Scienza Nuova by Nicolini. Thus, as we observed in speaking of his philosophy that Vico's was not an acute mind, so now in speaking of his historical work we must say that it was not critical. But as while we denied him acuteness on a small scale we acknowledged his profundity or acuteness on a large scale, so here also we ought to add that if Vico lacked the critical sense in small matters, in great matters he had abundance of it. Careless, headstrong and confused in detail ; cautious, logical and penetrative in essentials ; he exposes his flank or rather his whole body to the attacks VICO'S TREATMENT OF HISTORY 153 of the most miserable and mechanical pedant, and over- awes and- inspires respect in every critic and historian however great. And, totus mens though he is and all absorbed by his own discoveries, often he does not give his power of investigation and observation time and room to develop, and instead of history he invents myths and investigates romances ; but when he allows the power free play, it does wonders in the field of history too, as we shall try to show in the following chapters. But to judge the historical views of Vico by confronting them, as many have done, with those of modern historical research and praising or depreciating them accordingly would hardly be conclusive. Where the two terms of the comparison agreed the agreement might be fortuitous : where they diverged, the later doctrine might be but a development or consequence of the earlier attempt, and in any case the modern state of historical knowledge by no means provides an absolute standard. On the other hand it would be out of place, as well as beyond our power, to rehandle all the problems dealt with by Vico to see what there is of truth and falsehood in his conclusions. That would mean no less than writing a third Scienza Nuova more adapted to our own times. Our task is merely to indicate the principal historical problems which Vico set before himself, to state the solutions he gave, and always to keep in mind the state of knowledge not in our own day but in Vico's, so as to determine what progress in historical study may be set down to his influence. CHAPTER XIV NEW PRINCIPLES FOR THE HISTORY OF OBSCURE AND LEGENDARY PERIODS THE period of historical research which preceded the life of Vico was, as we have said, by no means credulous or uncritical. The day was past when " chronicles of the world " were compiled, when any fable and any falsi- fication however gross was accepted as history : and the seed sown by a few humanists had borne fruit in the Italian men of learning, the French juridical school, the school of Scaliger mentioned above, and all the great chronologists, epigraphists, archaeologists, topographers and geographers who in the seventeenth century formed the first immense critical collections of sources for ancient history. While the philologists were thus improving and perfecting their methods, detecting impostures and bridging lacunae, Bayle, Fontenelle, Saint-livremond and many others were engaged in spreading a scepticism or historical Pyrrhonism as it was also called, due to the intellectualistic philosophy ; and thus anticipating the polemic against the truth and utility of history which was to arise with immense vigour in the following century. This latter tendency was hypercritical rather than critical, its end being the destruction of history in general : and since historical scepticism was very apt to assume the character of a paradox adapted to the needs of elegant society and the wits, its influence on the progress of 154 HISTORY OF OBSCURE PERIODS 135 research was very small, or at most it succeeded in produc- ing strong reactions, one of which is represented by Vico, in favour of tradition and authority. It is on the other hand only proper to observe the failings of the first seriously scientific efforts of philologists and antiquaries. They re- habilitated witnesses, laid bare falsifications, reconstructed lists of rulers and magistrates, connected chronology and contradicted certain legends : but, whether owing to the tendencies of thought usual among pure scholars and philologists or because of the general atmosphere of their century's culture, they neither had nor conveyed a feel- ing for the antique and the primitive. Strong in detail, they were weak in essentials. When one of the most brilliant grasped, for instance, the importance of ballad- literature as a means of transmitting history at a period when the use of writing was unknown or uncommon, he did not receive from this observation and others like it such a shock as might stimulate him to recast from top to bottom his intuition and conception of primitive life, as was the case with Vico, who almost in a flash grasped the philosophical form of certitude and the two periods of mental and social life corresponding to it in actual history : the periods of obscurity and of legend. Vico himself started from a kind of scepticism, a scepticism as regards the prejudices of scholars and nations generally about the character and facts of antiquity : and in combating these prejudices he drew up a series of principles or " aphorisms," inspired appar- ently by Bacon's " idola," to which they present an analogy in the field of historical research. Vico puts the student on his guard first against the " magnificent opinions " which have been held up to his own day " concerning the most remote and least known antiquity" : a naive illusion whose origin he traces to the fact that man when in a state of entire ignorance erects himself into a rule for the universe. Here is the closest analogy fj6 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO with Bacon : for this statement is precisely like the class of " idola tribus," in which thought makes itself the rule of things " on the analogy of man, not of the universe " (ex analogia hominis, non ex analogia universi). On the same observation is founded the remark that " rumour grows in its course," fama crescit eundo, and Tacitus's omne ignotum pro magnifico est, everything unknown is taken for something great. Hence arises the habit of interpreting ancient customs in the expectation of finding them similar or superior to those of modern civilised life. Thus Cicero admired the humanity of the early Romans in calling enemies in war " guests " : not realising that the fact was precisely the opposite of this, and that guests were hastes, strangers and enemies. In the same way Seneca, by way of proving the duty of kindness to slaves, recalled that masters were anciently called " fathers of the family " ; as if " patres familias " might not have been the very reverse of kind not only to slaves and servants but to their own children, regarded as on the level of slaves. The same prejudice led Grotius, in his desire to show the gentleness of the ancient Germans, to collect a great number of barbaric laws in which homicide was punished by a fine of a few pence : which is on the contrary really a proof of the cheapness of the blood of poor rustic vassals, who are precisely the " homines " mentioned by these laws. In the second place, he warns us not to trust to the " conceit of nations," all of which, Greek or barbarian, Chaldean, Scythian, Egyptian, or Chinese, claimed, as Diodorus Siculus observes, to have founded humanity, discovered the amenities of life, and preserved their memory intact from the beginning of the world. Each of them, having for several thousand years had no communication with the others which might have led to the sharing of ideas, resembled in the obscurity of its chronology a man who sleeping in a very small chamber is misled by the darkness into believing it much too large ever to touch HISTORY OF OBSCURE PERIODS 757 it with his hand. He who accepts these dreamer's boasts for certain knowledge finds himself in the difficulty of having to choose between the various memories of various nations, all of which with equal justification claim to be original. By the side of national conceit Vico placed the " conceit of the learned," who desire their own knowledge to be as old as the world, and consequently delight in fancying an inaccessible esoteric wisdom among the ancients, coincid- ing miraculously with the opinions professed by each one of themselves, which they dress in the garb of antiquity in order to enforce their acceptance. Such was the mis- take not only of Plato, especially in the researches of the Cratylus, but of all historians, ancient and modern : Vico himself had fallen into it, and was therefore able to study it closely in his own case, when in the De anti- quissima he believed himself to have found in the etymo- logies of Latin words the proof of an Italian metaphysic exactly agreeing with his own doctrines of the conversion of the verum with the factum and of metaphysical points. From these three prejudices, especially from the conceit of the learned, follows the fourth, here called that of the " sources " or " channels of culture," ironically called by Vico the theory of " scholastic succession among nations." Upon this theory Zoroaster for instance instructed Berosus for Chaldaea, Berosus in his turn Mercurius Trimegistus for Egypt, Mercurius taught Atlas the Ethiopian lawgiver, Atlas Orpheus theThracian missionary , and finally Orpheus established his school in Greece. Long journeys these, and easy forsooth to those primitive nations which, scarcely out of the state of savagery, lived perched on mountains in almost inaccessible situations, unknown even to their neighbours ! And these long journeys were undertaken with the object of spreading discoveries, which any nation could make for itself. If, when nations came to know each other through wars and treaties, they were found to agree, 158 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO that was because they all contained some motive of truth and sprang from the same needs of man. Was it necessary to suppose the Athenian or Mosaic law to have affected that of the Romans, as did these " comparers " or derivers of laws, in order to explain the origin of the right recognised in Palestine, Athens and Rome to kill the thief by night ? Was it necessary for Pythagoras to travel spreading the doctrine of the transmigration of souls, which we find as far afield as India ? There remained the prejudice of considering the ancient historians as best informed about primitive times : whereas in the history of origins they knew as little as, or less than, ourselves. As for Greek history, Vico found, or rather imagined that he found, in Thucydides, a con- fession that the Greeks up to the generation preceding that historian knew nothing of their own antiquity : and he also observed that it was only in the time of Xenophon that Greek historians began to have any precise informa- tion upon Persian affairs. Roman historians commonly began with the foundation of Rome : but the beginning of Rome was certainly not the beginning of the world. Rome was a new city founded in the midst of a large number of small and more ancient peoples in Latium : and even in the case of Rome Livy refuses to guarantee the truth of the facts of the earlier centuries of its history up to the Punic wars, which he is in a position to describe more accurately. He even confesses frankly that he does not know at what point Hannibal made his great and memorable entry into Italy, whether by the Cottian Alps or the Apennines. So well informed were the ancient historians ! Owing to these and similar sceptical principles, the whole of Greek history to the time of Herodotus and of Roman down to the second Punic war seemed to Vico quite uncertain, an unclaimed territory, so to speak, where one might enter and take possession by squatter's HISTORY OF OBSCURE PERIODS IJQ right. He entered armed with positive principles directly issuing from the negative ones we have enumerated. For if Vico denied the credibility of historians distant in time from the facts they described, if he discounted national pride, if he laid bare the illusions and charlatanism of the learned, he nevertheless did not rest content with this work of destruction. In place of the old untrust- worthy method he had banished, he endeavoured to supply a new, of better qualities and greater tenacity ; a system of methods by which it was possible to acquire new his- torical documents and also to improve the study of those already known. No advance in historical knowledge is in fact ever made except by thus turning from the received narrative to the document underlying it, which alone has the power of confirming, correcting and en- riching the narrative. The first of Vico's contributions to historical method, the first source for the knowledge of the earliest civilisa- tions which he exposed, is the etymology of language. The usual methods of this study in his time were purely arbitrary : it proceeded by considering the sound of each syllable or letter and looking for other superficial resem- blances, and inferring from these facts the derivation of a word from this or that language, Latin, Greek or Hebrew. But etymology becomes a fruitful study only when it is remembered that language is the best evidence for the ancient life of a people, the life lived by them while the language was in the making : and when the student accordingly never ceases to explain language by customs and customs by language. Thus the etymology of abstract words leads us into the heart of a purely rustic society ; for intellegere, to understand, for example, recalls legere, to collect the produce of the fields (hence legumina, vegetables) ; disserere, to discuss, refers to scattering seed ; and the majority of words for inanimate things reveal relations with the human body and its members, i6o THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO and the sensations and passions of man ; thus " mouth " means any aperture, " lip " the edge of a pot, " forehead " and " back " are used for before and behind ; and so on. Vico aimed at one science of etymology common to all native languages, composed of monosyllabic, and largely onomatopoeic roots : another of foreign loan - words, introduced after nations became mutually acquainted : a third, of universal application, for the science of inter- national law, from which it should appear how the same men, facts or objects, looked at from the different points of view of different nations, received different names ; and finally a dictionary of mental words, common to all nations, which should explain the uniform ideas of sub- stances and the different modifications of them in national thought concerning the human needs and utilities common to all, according to the differences of their situation, climate, character and customs, and should thus narrate the origins of the various vocal languages, all converging in an ideal common language. The second source revealed by Vico is the interpreta- tion of myths or fables, which agreeably to his doctrine were not allegories, fictions or impostures, but the science of primitive man. In the Diritto universale Vico distin- guished four different and successive characters of the gods. At first they represented natural facts, Jupiter the sky, Diana the flowing water, Dis or Pluto the lower earth, Neptune the sea, and so on ; secondly, natural human affairs, for instance, Vulcan fire, Ceres corn, Saturn the seed ; thirdly, social facts ; and finally they rose to heaven and were translated to the stars, and terrestrial and human things were distinguished from divine. But in the two Scienze Nuove he emphasised almost exclusively the third or social meaning, which became in his eyes the original ; since, he appears to have thought, the earliest nations were too much intent upon themselves, too much immersed in their hard and difficult HISTORY OF OBSCURE PERIODS 161 life, to speculate in abstraction from social matters. Hence he found reflected in mythology the institutions, inven- tions, social cleavages, class-struggles, travels and warfare of primitive nations. Even in considerably advanced periods Vico was hostile to naturalistic or philosophical explanations. The saying " know thyself " attributed to the ancient sage seemed to him merely a piece of advice to the Athenian democracy, to know its own strength, later transferred to a metaphysical and moral sense. Beside this principle of social interpretation he established another of great importance : namely, that indecent meanings were inserted in myths at a late and corrupt period when men interpreted early customs in the light of their own, or tried to justify their own lusts by fancying that the gods had set them the example. Hence arose the adulterous Jupiter, Juno as the implacable enemy of Hercules' virtue, the chaste Diana soliciting the embraces of the sleeping Endymion, Apollo persecuting modest maidens even to their death, Mars, not content with committing adultery with Venus by land, but pursuing her even into the sea, and, worst of all, the love of Jupiter for Ganymede and of Jupiter again, transformed into a swan, for Leda. Such representations can only result in un- restrained vice, as happened in the case of the young Chaereas in Terence's comedy. But hi their original shape and meaning all myths were serious and austere, worthy of the founders of nations. The pursuit of Daphne by Apollo for instance referred to the magicians or diviners who arranged weddings and followed women through the woods where they were still liable to promiscuous ravish- ing ; Venus, covering her nakedness with the cestus, was a modest symbol of solemn matrimony ; the heroes, sons of Jupiter, were not the offspring of adultery, but born of permanent and solemn marriages celebrated according to the will of Jupiter as revealed by the diviners. To the pure all things are pure, and impure to the impure : M ids THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO the forests and mountain-tops could never beget the fancies of the closet and the brothel. Beside these two rich sources, language and mythology, Vico names and employs a third, which he calls the " great fragments of the ancient world," that is to say, the memories preserved by historians and poets, such as the Egyptian tradition of the three ages of gods, heroes and men ; the language of the gods mentioned in Homer ; the thirty thousand names of the gods collected by Varro and referring to a like number of needs in the natural, moral, economic and civil life of the earliest times ; the grove of Romulus, which Livy calls " the ancient plan of founding cities," and a few other golden sayings of ancient historians. Till now these fragments had been useless for the purposes of science, lying as they did in dirt, confusion and incompleteness : but when cleaned, restored and fitted together they conveyed valuable information. Nor did he overlook the monuments of architecture and sculpture, though the use he made of them was slight, and he saw that they were in the long run of little practical value. He declared that as for the historic period the most certain documents are the public coins, so for the legendary and obscure period their place is taken by " certain traces remaining in marble," as proofs of ancient customs, like the Egyptian pyramids with their hierogly- phic inscriptions and other fragments of the ancient world found in every region and bearing similar pictographic characters. It is also worthy of remark that he gives examples of arguments founded on technical observations and leading to conclusions in the sphere of prehistoric archaeology : as for instance when he says that one early period of human life is distinguished by the eating of roasted flesh, the simplest and least elaborate kind of food, because it requires nothing except the fire : a later period by boiled flesh, which also requires water, caldron and tripod. One powerful method of investigation in Vice's hands HISTORY OF OBSCURE PERIODS 163 is the comparative method, consisting in the comparison of better -known processes of development with those known imperfectly or in parts only, and the consequent reconstruction of the latter on the basis of the former. So for instance the principle of heroism, revealed by evidence found in Roman history, helps to explain the legendary history of the Greeks, to supply the deficiencies of that of Egypt and to shed light on the unknown history of all other nations of antiquity. Without denying the fact of transmission from one nation to another, Vico poured scorn upon the abuse of this conception, and minimised its value in the case of primitive societies : using in its place the idea of spontaneous development and endeavouring to reconstruct the process by the com- parative method. But he took this method in a very broad sense, and made use in it of materials drawn from the most widely varying countries and periods. To explain for example how the thundering sky suggested to primitive man the idea of a god, he mentions the fact that the natives of America, when first they heard the noise and recognised the deadly effects of firearms in the hands of the Spaniards, believed them to be gods : the rhapsodists of the Homeric poems reminded him of the singers on the quay at Naples with their ballads of Roland and the paladins : the transformations or meta- morphoses described by the ancient poets resembled the tales of goblins and fairies still told by mothers to amuse little children, or the widely-scattered mediaeval legends of the magician Merlin : he traces the mythology of the hearth down to the custom of the log which in Boccaccio's time at Florence the head of the family used to light upon the hearth at the new year, sprinkling incense and wine on it, and the Christmas-eve log among the lower classes at Naples ; not to mention the custom in the Neapolitan kingdom of counting families by " hearths." He brought the serpent Python and all other mythical serpents into 164 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO relation with the viper of the Visconti " che i milanesi accampa " (" which calls to arms the Milanese ") and the hieroglyphic script with the " rebus de Picardie " used in the north of France. It would be useless to look in earlier or contemporary philology for clear general precedents for these principles, negative and positive, established by Vico for the history of obscure and legendary periods. They are too closely bound up with and essential to his whole philosophical thought ever to have originated apart from this thought itself. The rude fragments of ancient Roman laws, customs and formulae, the Homeric poems, the words of the Latin language, when examined with unprejudiced eyes the power which enables a man of genius to see things without distortion and worked over by a mind ready to accept them in their true nature, were bound to excite in Vico, compared with the learned but colour- less or falsely-coloured historical research of his day, a rebellion and upheaval like that which took place a century later in the mind of Augustin Thierry when he saw, depicted in the pages of Chateaubriand's poetical prose, Pharamond and his Franks, with their unrestrained movements, their rude and savage arms, their terrible war-cries and their barbaric songs. CHAPTER XV HEROIC SOCIETY As the Franks, in the compilations of national history made by the Jesuit colleges and other French schools, appear stripped of all their characteristic features and reduced to wise monarchs, pious queens and devoted warriors of the Church, so ancient and primitive history, thanks to the rhetoric and the naive ideas of scholars, has been painted in brilliant and untrue colours of the same kind as those with which Lebrun or Luca Giordano painted their pompous and theatrical pictures. Kings who devoted themselves to sage counsel in order to aid their subjects while at the same time not diminishing the splendour of their courts and the brilliancy of their happy nobles, philosopher kings such as made Plato sigh for the day when philosophers should rule or kings philo- sophise ; loyal and valiant knights, eager to sacrifice themselves for the common welfare ; statesmen who used to accomplish pilgrimages at speed in order to bring back from afar to their waiting citizens laws more wise than their own ; good fathers of families, admirable mothers, brave and obedient young men, loving and modest maidens, every one a personification of some virtue or even of all virtues at once, models of human perfection : such are the figures which sanctified by their venerable antiquity fill alike volumes and imaginations. These are the heroes of Greek and Roman history : and 165 166 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO all this splendid cloth-of-gold decoration must be torn off and cleared away if we would attempt to discover in the deepest recesses of the memory of mankind the true heroes, the heroes of reality, not of literature, of life, not of the stage : ignorant, superstitious, fierce, selfish, harsh to their families, cruel to their inferiors, avaricious, grasping, and yet, in spite of or even because of these same characteristics of barbarism, heroes : virtuous with the one kind of virtue possible and necessary in primitive times, the virtue of strength, discipline, and a deep and uncom- promising sense of religion. The misrepresentation of the primitive hero as a wise and virtuous member of a civilised society reaches its height, so far as political history is concerned, in the failure to understand the three chief words which sum up the constitution of the state : king, people and freedom. By a misunderstanding of the first, it is believed that the -original form of the state was monarchy, the absolute monarchy which rests on the strength of the people and keeps in check the nobles : which is really a late develop- ment in history, if not the latest. Into this error had fallen Jean Bodin, whom Vico chose as the object of his polemic. But Bodin, more acute than other political writers, involved himself in a contradiction, because though he accepted the common error he nevertheless, observing the effects of an aristocratic republic in the supposed freedom of ancient Rome, propped up his system by distinguishing between state and government, and asserting that Rome in the earliest period was popular in state but aristocratically governed ; and since this prop was too weak to bear the whole weight of the facts he at last confessed that this republic was aristocratic both in government and in state, thus contradicting the whole of his own doctrine as to the necessary succes- sion of states. The truth is that the kings of these earliest periods were at Rome, as at Sparta and elsewhere, not HEROIC SOCIETY 167 monarchs at all. The fathers, patricians or heroes were monarchical kings only in the period of domestic monarchy, when each family lived separately ; but they were kings of a special kind, subject to no one but God, armed with religions of terror and consecrated with the most cruel penalties. On emerging from this first state, when the fathers united into a patrician order, their king was simply one or more of themselves, the mere magis- trate of the order. Hence Rome, after expelling the Tarquins by a purely aristocratic revolution, did not change her state at all. She preserved her kings in the shape of two consuls, " annual kings," two aristocratic kings who were " deprived of no single detail of the royal power." The two kings of Sparta had the same character ; they were liable like the consuls to be held accountable for their actions and could be condemned to death by the ephors. As these states had been falsely considered monarchical, so, no less falsely, they had been taken as popular in character. The people referred to in this way does not coincide with, in fact it excludes, 4;he plebs : the " populus " was simply the patrician order, and freedom meant simply the freedom of the patricians, the liberty of the master : and the " patria " was appropriately so called, because it really was res patrum, the property of a few fathers. It is absurd to think that the plebs, a horde of the most worthless labourers treated as slaves, could possess the right of electing the king, and that the fathers confined themselves to merely approving this election in the senate. The relations between fathers and plebeians were quite other than neighbourly peace, mutual trust and hearty co-operation. The heroes, according to a passage of Aristotle, took a solemn oath to be eternal enemies of the plebs : that was the form their democratic spirit took. And the " Roman virtue " which sets before us so many and such glorious examples, 168 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO gives no example of kindliness to the common people. Brutus, who dedicated his house in the persons of his two sons to the cause of freedom : Scaevola, who terrified Porsena by punishing his own right hand in the fire : the stern Manlius, who executed his own son when he returned victorious through a successful breach of military dis- cipline : Curtius, who leapt in full armour with his horse into the fatal chasm : Decius, who devoted himself for the safety of his army : Fabricius and Curius, who re- fused the Samnite gold and the kingdom of Pyrrhus : Attilius Regulus, who went to certain death to preserve the sanctity of a Roman's oath : what did these men ever do for the commons, except increase their miseries by war, plunge them deeper into the waters of usury, and immure them more closely in the private dungeons of the nobles where they were flogged bare-backed like the vilest slaves ? And woe to any aristocrat who allowed himself the slightest desire to alleviate these miseries ! He was promptly accused of sedition and treason and sent to his death ; the fate that in Rome befel Manlius Capitolinus, who saved the Capitol from the fires of the Gaul, and yet for his democratic sympathies was thrown from the Tarpeian rock ; the fate that came in Sparta, the hero-city of Greece as Rome was the hero- city of the world, to the great-souled king Agis, the Manlius Capitolinus of Lacedaemon, who, for trying to lighten the burden of the unhappy commons by a law abolishing debts and to aid them by another giving them testamentary rights, was strangled by the ephors. The famous " Roman virtue " amazes any one who is obsessed by the modern idea of a virtue consisting in justice and benevolence to all mankind. What virtue could live with such pride ? What moderation with such avarice ? What mercy with such cruelty ? What justice with such inequality ? The heroes treated their own families no less harshly HEROIC SOCIETY i6g than the plebs. The education of children was stern, rough and cruel. The Spartans, in order that their sons might not fear pain and death, beat them within an inch of their lives in the temple of Diana, so that they often fell dead in agonies of pain beneath their father's blows. In Greece as hi Rome it was lawful to kill innocent new- born children, a custom the reverse of the modern, by which the delights which surround little children shape the softer side of human nature. Wives were bought by the dowries of the heroic period, a survival of which was the practice solemnly observed in Rome of marriage "coemptioneetfarre" (a similar custom is ascribed by Tacitus to the ancient Germans and must be considered universal among barbarous peoples), and were maintained simply as a necessity of nature for the procreation of children and in other respects treated like slaves ; as can still be seen in many parts of the old world and almost every- where in the new. The acquisition of children and the thrift of the wife were simply reckoned as so much profit to the father and husband. The counterpart of this political and domestic system is found in the ordinary life of the period, which was innocent of all luxury, refinement and ease. Pastimes were arduous, such as wrestling and hunting, to harden body and mind, or else dangerous, like jousting or hunting big game, to accustom men to think lightly of wounds and death. Wars were carried on under a religious aspect and were always therefore extremely bitter. From such wars resulted the system of heroic slavery, by which the conquered were held to be men without God, so that they lost civil and natural liberty at once. Foreigners were considered enemies : the earliest nations were intensely inhospitable. Brigandage and piracy were recognised ; and Plutarch says that the heroes considered it a great honour and prize of valour to be called " robbers." It was, in fine, a society immediately proceeding out 170 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO of that of the gods, which as we know was the climax of the state of nature. In its passage from the prehistoric age as we should say in modern language into the dawn of history it still retained much of the earlier customs, those customs which Vico thinking of the lonely Poly- phemus in his cave called " Cyclopean rules." The age of gold out of which it came, innocent, kindly, humane, tolerant and dutiful, as scholars and poets believed, was in reality one perpetual " superstitious fanaticism," tormented by a continual terror of the gods, to placate whom men used to offer human sacrifice, traces of which remain among the historic Phoenicians, Scyths and Germans, the tribes of America and even the Romans themselves, who afterwards substituted for it the ceremony of throwing straw puppets into the Tiber. Even the sacrifice of children was not unknown ; memories of it are preserved in Agamemnon's sacrifice of Iphigenia and elsewhere. But in this age of the gods, in spite of or by means of this cruel superstition, were founded the great institutions of humanity ; religious cults together with augurial divination, marriage and burial. Weddings, judgment-seats and altars, and the removal of the bodies of the dead from the reach of the malignant air and the wild beasts " taught the human brutes to be pious " as Foscolo says in his Sepolcri, merely versifying Vico's prose. These " Cyclopes " who conjoined and confused in themselves the functions of king, wise man (that is divination) and priest, at first placed their dwellings on the heights of mountains, in places airy and therefore healthy, naturally fortified, and near the perennial springs, where were the nests of eagles and vultures, the birds with which augury dealt. Hence the importance of water and fire, which became symbols of the family ; the earliest marriages were solemnised " aqua et igni," between parties who shared a common spring and hearth, and therefore belonged to the same household ; so that they HEROIC SOCIETY 171 must have been between brothers and sisters. The period of the cyclopes was a strongly moral period. It was not true of it that " pleasure and law were one " in the sense fancied by later effeminate poets ; for these men, whose minds like those which we may still find among the peasants of to-day were insensible to the refinements of vice, found that alone pleasant which was lawful and that alone lawful which was useful. They were just with the justice of a savage towards his god ; continent, for they had made an end of promiscuous intercourse ; brave, hard-working and high-spirited, as they were bound to be, surrounded as they were by hardships and perils. It was only later that these primeval groups of humanity descended into the plains and began to till them, and then, from living inland as they did at first, travelled gradually to the sea, learnt the art of navigation and founded colonies. In this way families or gentes existed before states. States were in fact formed of families grouped into an order of gentes maiores or " ancient noble houses " as they were afterwards called to distinguish them from others added later to the order (for instance at the time of Junius Brutus, to fill the vacancies in the Roman senate after the expulsion of the kings) and called " gentes minores." But these gentes had within themselves an element of differentiation and strife. Families were not composed, as is generally believed owing to the common mistake of giving modern meanings to ancient words, of wives and children alone ; but also of slaves, famuli, those who, being less strong and remaining longer in the nomadic state of nature, finally " as sometimes wild animals, driven either by extreme cold or by hunters, to save their life betake themselves to inhabited places " had sought refuge with the stronger, in the fortresses of the fathers. In return for the protection thus granted they tilled the father's land, and were bound and as it were tied to 172 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO them, and hence called nexi ; they followed them and served them, and therefore gained the name of clientes. The relation of slaves to fathers was the second form of human relation, the first being the natural one of matri- mony ; it constituted the feudal status, which has wrongly been believed peculiar to a certain definite period of barbarism, the Middle Ages, whereas it existed in all heroic societies, and was the eternal feudal principle whence sprang all the republics of the world. As Tacitus says, speaking of the Germans, the chief oath of these slaves and clients was to guard and defend each his own master and to assign to his master's glory his own deeds of valour (suum principem defendere et tueri, sua quoque fortia facia gloriae eius adsignare, praecipuum iuramentum erat] ; which is one of the severest conditions of the feudal system. Moreover the father's children are rather confused with the slaves than distinguished from them. They are distinguished by their title of liberi, but are identified by their similar position of obedience and lack of separate personality. The need felt by the fathers of securing themselves against the frequent mutinies of the slaves led to the mutual alliance of fathers, the patrician order and the heroic state. Of this state the slaves constituted the first plebs. They had no citizen's rights, since they were not citizens ; no solemnities of marriage, since the auspices were a monopoly of the fathers ; nor the right of making wills, since that right had and always kept the political character of a command. They were therefore excluded from the comitia curiata held by the patricians under arms, which survived later for dealing with sacred ques- tions ; profane matters being everywhere in the earliest times, at Rome as in Greece and Egypt, considered as sacred. The king of the patricians, whom we have called the magistrate of the order, was thus especially their leader and general in their resistance to the slaves or plebeians. HEROIC SOCIETY 173 But the heroes did not provide for the stability of their order by means of forcible resistance alone. Just as, when they abdicated their position of sovereignty in their respective families for one of subordination to the higher sovereignty of the order, they formed a kind of noble or armed feudal system, so to keep their slaves more or less reconciled to obedience they granted them, without admitting them to citizenship, a kind of rustic feudalism. The origin of property is thus explained in a way entirely different on the one hand from the charmingly poetical theory according to which men adorned with all the virtues of the golden age when justice dwelt on earth, foreseeing the disorder that might result from communism, themselves with kindly arbitration marked out the limits of fields, endeavouring not to assign to one nothing but fertile, to another nothing but barren ground ; to one a waterless portion, to another one abounding in perennial streams : and different on the other hand from the " philosophical " origin by a voluntary submission to the wise, or that invented by " politician kings " who derived property from violence. The granting of this rustic feudalism, which might be called the first agrarian law, distinguished three kinds of land-tenure : bonitary for the people, quiritary or noble, supported by arms, for the fathers, and eminent, belonging to the whole order. And since the strength of the order rested upon its wealth, it did all in its power to prevent the enrichment of the plebs ; and in war here we see the social motive of the " Roman clemency " deprived the conquered of their arms only, leaving them in bonitary possession of their lands and imposing upon them a suitable tribute. For the same reason the patricians were very reluctant to go to war, for then the plebeian multitude gained experience of warfare and became dangerous. The detachment of law from force was slow, and traces of the latter remained in every part of the former. In 174 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO the heroic republic there were at first no laws providing for the punishment of offences and the restitution of private injuries ; hence, failing judiciary laws, arose the need of duels and reprisals, which perpetuated the customs of the age of innocence or of the gods. Poetry and history describe some of these duels, which were armed judgments : for instance, that of Menelaus and Paris under the walls of Troy, and that of the Horatii and Curiatii, between Rome and Alba. It was a plan of divine providence, in order that between barbaric nations of scanty understanding and incapable of listening to reason war should not always beget war : that right and wrong might be to some degree determined by a belief in the favour or disfavour of the gods as the cause of victory or defeat. These ordeals by battle were accompanied and super- seded by ordeals by verbal formulae, used in their religious habit of mind with the most minute and scrupulous exactitude and with care not to alter a single letter (religio verborum). Horatius, who by killing his sister fell under the law " horrendi carminis," could never have been acquitted by the decemvirs, however free from blame they thought him ; and the people acquitted him, says Livy, " more through admiration of his valour than the justice of his cause " (magis admiratione virtutis quam iure causae). In later days Roman law still retained this character of verbal precision to such a degree that it forms the crux of several of Plautus's comedies, in which panders are at the mercy of enamoured young men who have led them to violate some legal formula. The private law of this society corresponded closely with its economic constitution. It was an entirely natural society, confined to the necessaries of life, and did not use money ; hence the law knew nothing of contracts formed, according to the law of a later period, by mere consent. All obligations were ratified by giving the hand ; the HEROIC SOCIETY 175 first buying and selling was barter ; the rent of a house consisted in a mortgage on the soil for building it, the rent of land in planting it ; companies and credit were un- known. The material character of the first contracts and the forcible character of early legal processes were gradually modified as time went on, and became symbolic. As the fiction of force in marriage-rites recalled the actual force with which the giants dragged the first women into caves, so no less the ceremonies of mancipatio, usucapio and vengeance had formerly been acts really performed. Mancipatio was performed as we said with the actual hand, that is with real force ; for instance, in occupation, the original source of all rights of possession ; usucapio by the permanent planting of the body upon the thing possessed ; vengeance was originally a duel or a " con- dictio," private retaliation. Then they became cere- monies or fictions : mancipatio became a civil transference with solemn acts and phrases (si quis nexum faciet manci- piumgue uti lingua nuncupassit ita ius esto " If any one makes a thing bond to him and his possession, let the law be so that he publish it with his tongue ") ; usucapio a tenure which is supposed to last as long as life ; retalia- tion a series of personal actions accompanied by a solemn declaration of them to the debtor. There were worn in the forum as many masks as there were legal personalities, and under the " person " or mask of a paterfamilias were hidden all the children and all the slaves of the house. Instead of abstract forms, which were not yet thought of, living bodily forms were used. Heredity for instance was invented as mistress of hereditary property, and imagined to exist completely in every particular piece of inherited goods ; the idea of indivisible right again, was materialised in the glebe or clod of earth presented to the judge with the formula " huncfundum." This ancient jurisprudence was throughout poetical ; its fictions 176 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO turned facts into falsehoods and falsehoods into facts, made the unborn live, the living dead, and the dead to survive in their posterity. It created numbers of empty legal personalities without subjects (iura imaginaria), rights invented by the imagination ; and the formulae in which the laws were expressed were called because of their strict rhythm of such and so many words " verses " carmina. The fragments of the Twelve Tables, if care- fully considered, end their sentences for the most part in an Adonian verse, which is ultimately a fragment of the hexameter metre ; and Cicero, realising this, begins his " Laws " with the sentence Deos caste adeunto pietatem adhibento. Cicero also tells us that the Roman boys used to sing the laws of the twelve tables " like a regular song " (tanquam necessarium carmen), and Aelian says the same of the Cretan children and the laws of Minos. The Egyptian laws according to one tradition were " poems of the goddess Isis," and those given by Lycurgus to the Spartans and by Draco to the Athenians were formulated in verse. The whole of the ancient Roman law was a " serious poem," or as Vico says elsewhere a " kind of Roman drama," poema quoddam dramaticum Romanum, performed by the Romans in the forum ; and ancient jurisprudence was a " severe poetry." This poetic atmosphere in heroic society and this metrical tendency in its language are facts borne out by many witnesses and proofs, by the observations and conjectures of scholars and by the narrations of travellers and missionaries. Hebraists are divided upon the ques- tion whether Hebrew poetry is metrical or rhythmical; but Josephus, Origen and Eusebius are in favour of metre, and St. Jerome asserts that a great part of the book of Job is in hexameter verse. The Arabs, who had no knowledge of writing, preserved their language down to the time when they overran the eastern provinces of the Greek empire by handing on the memory of their national HEROIC SOCIETY 777 poems. The Egyptians wrote the lives of the dead in verse ; the Persians and Chinese committed to verse their earliest history, as also, according to Tacitus, the Germans and, according to Justus Lipsius, the Americans. And since of these two last nations the former was only known to the Romans late in their history and the latter to Europe at the end of the fifteenth century, there is good reason to suppose that the same is true of all other barbaric nations ancient and modern. The earliest metre, found not only in Greece but in Assyria, Phoenicia and Egypt, was the heroic or hexa- meter. Owing to the slowness of thought and the diffi- culties of pronunciation it was bound at first to have a spondaic character (hence the final foot in the line was always a spondee) and only later when mind and tongue became more active did it admit the dactyl. Then, when this activity still further increased, arose the iambic (pede praesto as Horace calls it) which approximates most nearly to prose ; so much so, indeed, that the early prose writers before Gorgias practically used the iambic metre of poetry, and prose frequently passed over into iambic verse. Tragedy was composed in iambics, a metre which is naturally adapted to it, produced as it was to give expression to wrath, according to the story which makes Archilochus invent it to express his anger against Lycambus ; and if comedy afterwards adopted the same metre, it was only by the " meaningless following of example," not because the iambic metre was naturally suited to it as it was to tragedy. The primitive language of these societies was poetical not only through its use of metre but also by being com- posed through and through of lively metaphors, vivid fancies, striking resemblances, apt comparisons, ex- pressions by means of cause or effect, whole or part, elliptic or pleonastic figures of speech, onomatopoeisms or imitations of sounds by words, abbreviations, com- N 178 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO pound words, minute circumlocutions, characteristic epithets, contortions in syntax and episodes. All these are ways of makhig oneself understood devised by men ignorant of the precise words required, or of a word, if in conversation, understood by both parties. The episode is characteristic of women and peasants, who are unable to select what they need and omit what is alien to their subject ; contorted language is the result of inability to express oneself directly, or of being prevented from doing so, as may be seen in the case of irascible or contemptuous persons, who make use of the nominative and oblique cases but do not utter verbs. The very words of these languages taken one by one reveal in the frequency of their diphthongs a trace of the song out of which speech arose ; and this abundance of diphthongs still remains in the Greek and French languages, which passed rapidly and prematurely from the age of spontaneity to that of reflection. The German language would certainly offer a rich store of heroic forms, with its abundance of com- pound words which so happily translate those of Greek, and its syntax which exceeds Latin in complexity as Latin does Greek. If German scholars, says Vico several times with a wistful glance at a field of study closed to himself, would use the principles of the New Science in research upon the origins of their language, they would certainly make wonderful discoveries. The conception of the universe prevalent among the men of this period, and the histories of themselves which they related, of their origins, warfare and fortunes, were also poetical, or rather mythical. It was even the case as we have seen that their conceptions in the sphere of social history preceded those of a cosmological, physical or psychological character. By a rigid application of this principle Vico developed his doctrine of " natural theo- gony," arising naturally in the imagination on the occasion of certain human needs and utilities : the genesis of the HEROIC SOCIETY I7g twelve greater Gods, Di maiores, that is to say, the gods invented by the gentes maiores and, to a great extent, brought by them to the foundation of the state. Jupiter or the sky, with his language of lightning, was the author of the first laws of the family ; Juno symbolised marriage, Diana matrimonial chastity, Apollo the light of civilisa- tion ; Vulcan, Saturn and Cybele were respectively the fire with which the forests were burnt to make clearings, the sowing of seed and the tilling of land ; Mars symbolised the warfare of the heroes " pro aris et focis," and Venus civilised beauty. In addition to this celestial Venus arose a plebeian Venus to whom was given the attribute of doves ; not as typifying the passion of love, but because they were " degeneres," common birds in comparison with the eagle. A double signification, patrician and plebeian, was given in the same way to Vulcan and Mars. The stormy relations of the fathers with the slaves, the struggles and penalties referred to in the myths of Tantalus and Sisyphus, begin to be reflected in the twelve greater gods. Hercules, struggling with Antaeus, signifies the nobles of the heroic cities, and Antaeus the mutinied slaves led back into the primitive cities on the mountain-tops (Antaeus lifted up into the air) and overcome and bound down to the earth, that is to say forced back to their servile labour. The birth of the tenth divinity, Minerva, expresses the weakening and diminution of the heroic power, since the plebeian Vulcan (the mutinied slaves) strikes the head of Jupiter with an axe, the tool of a servile art. Mercury represents the granting of bonitary rights to the plebs and the maintenance of quiritary rights by the fathers. The last of the twelve deities, Neptune, arose wben the peoples descended to the sea-coast ; and the legends of Minos, the Argonauts, the Trojan' war, the return of Ulysses, Europa and the bull, the Minotaur, Perseus and Theseus refer to colonisation and piracy. The mythological interpretation of history does not i8o THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO cease with the foundation of states. The founders of civilisation, Zoroaster and Mercurius Trimegistus, Orpheus and Confucius, even if they are not strictly gods, are at least poetical characters. Aesop is typical of the " socii " or slaves of the heroes and hence is represented as ugly, that is, devoid of civilised beauty (honestas) ; and his fable of the lions' society shows to perfection the real rela- tion of the heroes to their slaves, in which the latter share the toils, but not the spoils. Draco, of whom Greek historians tell us nothing but that he imposed a stern code of laws, symbolises the cruelty of the heroes to their slaves. Solon was either a party-leader of the Athenian plebs, or else a simple personification of the plebs itself, considered from the point of view of its vengeance. In the history of Rome we find poetical figures in Romulus, to whom were ascribed all the laws of the orders ; in Numa, author of the laws dealing with sacred matters and religious ceremonies ; in Tullus Hostilius, who organised and legislated for the military system ; in Servius Tullius the author of the census (which has been imagined, contrary to all historical truth, the foundation of a popular republic, whereas it was really the foundation of an aristocratic) ; and in Tarquinius Priscus, who in- vented insignia of rank and military uniforms ; lastly, the Decemvirs and the Twelve Tables are turned into poetical figures, since to these events and persons were ascribed a great number of laws favourable to liberty and really dating from a later period. Thus, before philosophers began to elaborate the system of myths by creating new ones when they be- lieved they were interpreting the old (Plato for instance introduced into the myth of Jupiter the idea of the omni- present and all-pervading ether, his own invention, and other philosophers saw in the birth of Minerva from the head of Jupiter a description of the divine wisdom, or in Chaos and Orcus the confused mass of the universal HEROIC SOCIETY 181 seeds of nature and the primitive matter of the world), poet-theologians had expressed their ideas in mythology, ideas in which the metaphysical and physical elements were very small, but containing a large nucleus of human and political fact. The Chaos of these theologian-poets was the confusion of human seed during the period of brutal community of women ; it was confused because devoid of human regulation, obscure because devoid of the light of civilisation. The misshapen monster Orcus devoured everything because men in this community had no human shape, and were absolved by the void, because through the impossibility of knowing their off- spring they left no trace of themselves behind. The four elements of the world corresponded to the four elements of social life : the air where Jupiter lightened, the water of the perennial springs, the fire that burnt the forests, and the earth, the scene of man's labours. Being and sub- sisting were conceived the former as the act of eating (peasants still say of a sick man, meaning that he is not dead yet, that he is " still eating ") and the latter as " standing upon one's feet." The composition of the body was analysed into solids and liquids, that of the soul into air : generation into the act of " concipere " or " concapere," that is, taking hold of neighbouring material bodies, overcoming their -resistance and adapting and assimilating them to one's own nature : and all the internal functions of the soul were ascribed to the head, the breast or the heart. Cosmographical ideas were narrow, confined as they were to the life of these societies. The first heaven was placed no farther off than the tops of the mountains, where the giants saw the lightning play : the lower world was no deeper than a ditch, and was only by degrees enlarged and sunk into the valleys as opposed to the sky, that is to say to the mountain-tops ; the earth was identified with the limits of the cultivated fields. In the course of i8a THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO time the sky, the object of contemplation from which auguries were drawn, was lifted to a greater height, and with it the gods and heroes who were attached to the planets and constellations ; and thus arose poetical astronomy. Geographical knowledge extended no farther than the country inhabited by each nation ; and this is the reason why peoples travelling into foreign and distant lands gave to the new cities and to the mountains, hills, passes, islands and promontories the same names which were borne by those of their native land. Asia or India was at first for the Greeks the eastern part of Greece itself, Europe or Hesperia its western, and Thrace or Scythia its northern district. But we will not enter into further details ; indeed we have omitted much already. It is not the detail that gives its value to Vice's picture of the heroic age. His etymologies, his mythical interpretations, the genesis and chronological succession of his gods, the genesis and succession of his phonetic, metrical and stylistic forms each, taken by itself, may be contested ; but taken as a whole they are rich with a truth which transcends the single propositions. This truth is the mighty effort to recall a form of humanity and society still doubtless living in surviving records and monuments, still recognis- able here and there in a fragmentary form in various parts of the modern world ; but for centuries, even in Vice's days, buried beneath a mass of irrelevant fancies, conventional types, and prejudices of every kind, which prevented its true characteristics from appearing. CHAPTER XVI HOMER AND PRIMITIVE POETRY THE poet of primitive society was Homer : and if such was his character, he could not have enjoyed the profound wisdom, the delicate and lofty sense of morality, and the supreme knowledge of all the sublimest arts and sciences which ancient philosophers and writers fancied him to possess, and the common opinion of literary men and critics still attributed to him in the seventeenth century. What an extravagant philosopher Homer would have been, if he had indeed been a philosopher : how miserably, had he set out to do so, would he have organised Greek civilisation ! His Jupiter indicates force, brute force, as the standard of the respect due to him; his Minerva despoils Venus, knocks Mars down with a stone, strikes Diana and is in turn insulted by Mars ; and both Venus and Mars are wounded by Diomed, a mere mortal. The heroes Achilles and Agamemnon exchange insults such as would hardly be used by servants in a comedy to-day : they call each other " dogs " and quarrel in the most uncivil manner for the possession of Briseis and Chryseis. Ferocious in their customs, they leave the bodies of their enemies to dogs and crows : intemperate in their pleasures, they drink to excess. Lofty intelligence, kindness of heart, balance of mind may be sought in vain in all their actions and sentiments. The fact is, these heroes show themselves men of the scantiest understanding, the wildest 183 j -84 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VI CO imagination, the most violent passions ; boorish, bar- barous, intractable, fierce, arrogant, defiant and obstinate in their resolves and at the same time flighty in the extreme, at the mercy of any new object that presents itself to their eyes. Here again, the most striking parallel may be found in the psychology of the peasant, who as may be seen every day embraces any reasonable motive proposed to him but owing to the weakness of his intellect soon abandons the idea he has been persuaded to adopt and slips naturally back to his first intention. In the same way the Homeric heroes sometimes acquiesce in the first word of opposition offered to them ; sometimes at a sudden mournful re- collection they burst into bitter lamentation in the midst of their anger : or else, if while in the greatest misery they meet with something pleasant, like Ulysses at the feast of Alcinous, they lose all memory of their sorrows and become completely cheerful ; or else, when in a calm and peaceful state of mind, they take offence at a harmless word and flying into a blind passion threaten the speaker with a cruel death. Even the virtues which they possess in an eminent degree, their frankness, vigour, magna- nimity and generosity, are tinged with this same character of unreflective passion. The hero of heroes, Achilles, who bears on his shoulders the destinies of Troy, owing to a private wrong he had received from Agamemnon a grave wrong, but an in- sufficient motive for the ruin of his country and his whole nation condemned all the Greeks to defeat and destruc- tion at the hands of Hector ; and he only determined to aid them in order to assuage the personal grief caused by Hector's slaying his friend Patroclus. If only this extreme aloofness had been due to passion and jealousy ! But though when Agamemnon deprived him of Briseis he made enough noise to fill heaven and earth and supply the plot of the entire Iliad, yet he never in the whole course of the poem shows a spark of real love : just as HOMER AND PRIMITIVE POETRY 185 Menelaus mustered the whole of Greece against Troy to avenge the rape of Helen but never suffers the least pang of jealousy against Paris who is enjoying her. So devoid is Achilles of common humanity, that when Hector wishes to arrange that the victor in the fight shall bury the vanquished, he forgets that they are equals in rank and that death levels all, and savagely answers : " When have men ever made a truce with lions, and when have wolves and lambs had the same wish ? " and he adds, " If I slay thee, I will drag thee bound naked to my chariot round the walls of Troy three days " (as he actually did in the sequel) and finally, " I will give thee to my hounds to devour." And he would have carried out his threat, had not the unhappy father Priam come to him to ransom the corpse. But even in this deeply-moving interview, when he has received Priam in his tent after the latter has, escorted by Mercury, passed alone through the midst of the Greek camp, when he has welcomed him to his table, at a single involuntary word that falls from the lips of the unhappy old man as he bewails the loss of so valiant a son Achilles forgets the sacred law of hospi- tality ; and, ignoring the full and complete trust which Priam had placed in him, untouched by the terrible mis- fortunes of such a king, by the respect due to a father and the veneration due to so old a man, without reflecting on the reversal of his fortunes, of all things the most apt to excite pity, flies into a bestial rage and shouts a threat that he " will cut off his head " ! Death itself does not end his anger at the loss of Briseis, were it not that the beautiful and unhappy princess Polyxena, daughter of the once rich and powerful Priam and now a wretched slave, is sacrificed on his tomb, that the shade glutted with revenge may drink the last drop of her innocent blood ; and in the lower world, when Ulysses asks him what state he prefers, Achilles answers that he "would rather be the commonest slave, but alive " ! Such is 186 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO the hero whom Homer adorns with the permanent epithet of " without reproach " (a/tv/ztov) and celebrates in the hearing of Greece as a pattern of heroic virtue. Such a hero, whose reasoning powers are concentrated in his spear-point, can only be classed with those self-satisfied persons of whom we say nowadays that they are too fine to breathe the common air. If Homer's greatest characters are so discordant with our civilised nature, the similes which he uses are drawn from savage beasts and wild nature generally. If the life which he represents a life of children in its intellectual futility, of women in its imaginative vigour, and of head- strong youths in the violence of its passion and the tales of which the Odyssey is full, tales worthy of an old woman engaged in amusing children, prevent our attributing any esoteric wisdom to Homer, the striking success of these wild similes is certainly not characteristic of a mind tamed and civilised by philosophy of any sort. Nor could that truculent and savage style in which he describes the various sanguinary battles, the diverse and extrava- gantly bloodthirsty species of butchery which especially go to make the sublimity of the Iliad, have originated in a mind humanised and softened by philosophy. But who was Homer ? What opinions as to him can we find in ancient writers, and what facts can we draw from his poems ? An unprejudiced reader of the Iliad and Odyssey is at every step aware of and baffled by extra- vagant and inconsistent statements. The life portrayed is inconsistent : it takes us now here, now there, over a long period of time ; on the one hand we find Achilles the hero of force, on the other Ulysses the hero of wisdom : on the one hand, cruelty, barbarism, ferocity and brutality, on the other the luxury of Alcinous, the delights of Calypso, the pleasures of Circe, the songs of the Sirens and the pastimes of suitors who tempt and even win over the chaste Penelope. On the one hand we are shown boorish HOMER AND PRIMITIVE POETRY 187 and uncivilised manners, on the other jewels, magnificent clothing, exquisite foods and the arts of sculpture in bas-relief and metal-founding ;- on the one hand a strictly heroic society, on the other some signs of popular liberty. This delicate life fits ill with the savage and cruel life which especially in the Iliad, is ascribed to the same heroes at the same time. To regard them thus as con- temporaneous is an impossibility. From the customs of the Trojan period we have leapt abruptly into those of the time of Numa, to such an extent that " ne placidis coeant inmitia " we are compelled to suppose that the two poems were the work of many hands extending over many ages. The geographical allusions are equally inconsistent. These, no less, bring us into varied and distant physical surroundings. The scene of the Iliad lies to the east of Greece, inclining to the northward : that of the Odyssey in the west, inclining to the southward. The language, again, is inconsistent. The confusion of dialects persists in spite of the revision of Aristarchus, and has been explained by the most extraordinary hypo- theses, such as the theory that Homer drew the elements of his vocabulary from all the various Greek nationalities. Passing from the poems to the traditions of their author, the lives of Homer by Herodotus (if Herodotus really wrote it) and Plutarch are valueless. The most elementary facts about Homer are unknown : it is precisely concerning the man whom they considered the greatest luminary of Greece that the ancients leave us most completely in the dark. We know neither Homer's date nor his birthplace : each one of the Greek peoples claimed him as their citizen. It is said indeed that he was poor and blind, but it is just these details which excite our suspicion, as our laughter is aroused by the argument of Longinus which makes the Iliad the work of his youth and the Odyssey that of his old age. It would be indeed remarkable if such knowledge were current 188 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO concerning a man in whose case the two trifling details of time and place were unknown ! Above all, criticism must ask how a single man could ever have composed two poems of such a length at a time when writing was not in existence : since the three inscriptions of heroic age, one of Amphitryon, another of Hippocoon and a third of Laomedon mentioned with an excess of good faith by Vossius are mere forgeries like those made by the strikers of false coins. All these considerations led Vico to suspect that Homer himself was not a real person but one of those poetic characters to whom the ancient world ascribed long series of actions, works and events. If we try to conceive the Homeric poems not as the work of an individual but as two great storehouses of the manners and customs of earliest Greece, containing the history of its natural law and heroic period ; if instead of a single poet we imagine a whole nation of poets, and instead of a single act of creation, a national poetry developing in the course of centuries, everything falls into its place and finds an explanation. The extravagance of the legends is ex- plained by the fact that the composition of the Iliad and Odyssey falls in the third period of their existence. In the hands of the theological poets they were true and severe, by the heroic poets they were altered and corrupted, and in this corrupt state they were incorporated in the two poems. The variety of customs is explained if we consider the various periods of composition, and so also the " young Homer " and " old Homer," which are symbolic of the earlier and later periods of primitive Greece. The diversity of sites assigned to his birth and death and the variety of his dialects are accounted for by the fact that different peoples produced the lays. Finally, it is explained why every Greek people claimed him as a citizen, just because these peoples were them- selves Homer ; and why he was called blind and a beggar, HOMER AND PRIMITIVE POETRY 189 because such were as a rule the singers who went about from fair to fair reciting their tales. Thus in order to be rightly understood Homer must lose himself in the crowd of Greek peoples and be considered an idea or heroic character ; a type of the Greeks in so far as they narrated tales in ballad form. Thus facts which had only caused confusion and lacked plausibility in Homer as then under- stood became natural and necessary elements of the Homer now rediscovered. Above all, this latter Homer deserves the high praise of being the first of all historians of Greece known to us. In Homer we have a proof of the original identity of history and poetry, and a con- firmation of Strabo's assertion that before Herodotus, before even Hecataeus of Miletus, the history of the Greek peoples was written by their poets. In two golden passages of the Odyssey a man is praised for having told a story well and said to have " told it as a musician and a singer." Vico did not undertake a detailed investigation into the way in which the Homeric poems were elaborated. He seems however to incline towards two chief poet- authors, one, a native of the east of Greece, towards the north, for the Iliad, the other for the Odyssey, a native of the west towards the south : and by the title " Homer " he understands a composer and compiler of legends. But on the other hand, owing to the purely ideal meaning which this name has for him, we must not rule out the interpretation that the two Homers in their turn may be two streams of poetry and two groups of peoples or of popular singers. The historic figures whom Vico finds before him are the rhapsodes, men of the people who wandered independently about the fairs and festivals of the Greek cities reciting the songs of Homer. From the time of their primitive composition long ages elapsed before the Pisistratidae had them divided and arranged into two groups, the Iliad and the Odyssey, a fact which igo THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO shows clearly that in their time only a confused mass of material was to be found, and decreed that they should henceforth be sung by the rhapsodes at the Panathenaea. It is however certainly not in the resolution, materially understood, of the individual Homer into a myth or poetic character that the importance of Vico's theory lies : and the same is perhaps the case with its truth. From the inconsistencies observed by him, and not always accurately observed (which are moreover un- important, since the inaccuracies he notes might easily be balanced by the correct statements he omits), there was no strictly logical passage to the denial of the existence of an individual Homer, the principal author of one or both poems. These inconsistencies might serve to demonstrate that the poet or poets were working upon a rich fund of traditional material, of origin very various both as to time and place, and not regularly stratified according to origin, but having its strata confused and contorted. One or more poets, or even many poets and an able compiler of their lays, or a society of able compilers : these and similar hypotheses might equally well have been suggested, as happened later, and supported, as was later the case, by arguments neither more nor less cogent, because incapable of documentary proof. But under- lying this resolution of Homer into a poetic character, as it underlay other resolutions made or attempted by Vico, lay the discovery of the long and laborious historical genesis through which the matter of these poems had passed, so that in this sense they might really be called a product of collaboration on the part of the whole Greek people. The substitution of a nation of Homers for a single Homer was only another case of mythology constructed according to the principles dis- covered by Vico himself : mythology which must be retranslated into scientific prose. In the same way Vico's analysis of the customs described in the Homeric HOMER AND PRIMITIVE POETRY igi poems may be, and is, not only here and there adulterated with a few inaccuracies, but is on the whole exaggerated and one-sided. Still, this analysis taken as a whole was a great advance and opened new paths to Homeric criticism. How could the stubborn illusion of the noble Homeric hero, a great lord and a good ruler, a shining example of all civil, military and domestic virtues, be dis- pelled except by setting against it the picture of a boorish Achilles, full of elemental passions, violent, stubborn, unreasoning, quick to a generous impulse but no less quick to outbursts of brutal wrath ? Vice's progress in artistic appreciation of the Homeric poetry was no less marked. The recognition that a sound and rational philosophy was not to be found in the poet Homer would, in the mouth of any other critic of the time, have amounted to a slur on the poet : as expressed by Vico and as the consequence of his new aesthetic ideas it was a compliment. The errors which intellectualism and neo-classical criticism discovered in Homer led the critics to repeat freely the saying of Horace that " good Homer nods at times " : whereas Vico on the contrary exclaims " if he had not nodded so often he would never have been good ! " (nisi ita saepe dormitasset, nunquam bonus fuisset Homems). Homer was a great poet pre- cisely because he was not a philosopher. He had a retentive memory, a strong imagination and a sublime mind ; and neither the philosophies nor the arts of poetry and criticism which came after him could ever produce a poet at all like him. He was the only poet who could conceive heroic characters : his comparisons are incom- parable, his speeches sublime, expressive of the indi- viduality of the speaker, and created by the power of a vivid imagination : his diction is clear and splendid, his language composed entirely of similes, images and comparisons, and has none of those ideas of genus and species by which things are intellectually denned. He iga THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO is not delicate but grand, for delicacy is a small virtue and grandeur naturally despises small things : or even, just as a great and rushing torrent cannot help the turbid- ness of its water, and must perforce sweep rocks and trees with it in the violence of its course, so too in Homer we may find things of no value. But the torrent with all its impurities sweeps on its way superb and impetuous ; and Homer in spite of and partly because of his ruggedness is for ever the father and prince of all sublime poets. This new departure in Homeric criticism brought with it implicitly a complete revolution in the history of ancient literature. But on this subject Vico made only a few scattered remarks. He was no specialist : he did not write from a specialist's point of view, and too often when documentary evidence and thought were unable to solve a difficulty he solved it by means of his fancy, a faculty which was however in his case radiant with gleams of insight. Thus, the cyclic poets were not so called because of the circle of listeners in the centre of which they declaimed their poems, like the " Rinaldi " or ballad-singers whom Vico saw on the quay at Naples, and this circle had no connexion with the vilem patu- lumque orbem of Horace : but the observation that they differed little from these ballad-singers was sound. In the same way, we need not linger on his guesses at the dates of Homer and Hesiod, nor need we take literally his division of lyric poetry into three periods, namely those respectively of religious hymns, funeral chants for dead heroes and melic lyrics or " musical airs," the last including Pindar, and admired, flourishing as it did at the epoch of the " pompous virtue " of Greece, at the Olympic games where these poets sang. But still Vico has here put his finger on the difference between primitive and refined or cultured lyric poetry. The origin of tragedy he ascribes to the dithyramb or dramatic satire, of which no example has come down to us, and in rural customs HOMER AND PRIMITIVE POETRY 193 compared by him to those which were still in evidence during his own lifetime in Campania at vintage season ; and he notes the relation between tragedy and the epic. Tragedy had its rude beginnings at a time when the heroic spirit was already dead : it perfected itself by becoming subordinate to the Homeric poetry, deriving its inspiration from Homeric characters and avoiding original ones. The old comedy was closely related to tragedy. Like the latter it was derived from a chorus, and it preserved its archaic character in that it displayed living persons and real actions. The new comedy on the other hand was marked off by a profound change of spirit. Here the effects of philosophy were directly felt. Imagina- tive genera were superseded by intelligible and rational universals : and Menander and the other poets of the new comedy, living in the most humane period of Greek history, took their intelligible genera from human life and depicted them in their comedies, over which one feels that the breath of Socratic philosophy has passed. The persons of the new comedy were cast in a mould, and were not public but private characters : and as the chorus represents the public and argues about public affairs only, there is no room for it in the new comedy. About this time began the practice of inserting idealised heroes of perfect morals into poetry. Aristotle, remembering the strongly individualised characters of Homer, still main- tained as a principle of poetic composition that the heroes of tragedy should be neither very good nor very bad, but rather a mixture of great virtues and great faults. But the poets of the late period, making use of the idea origin- ated by philosophers, formed a "heroism of virtue": a heroism which may be called " gallant." Accordingly they either invented entirely new legends or else used old legends which had originally presented themselves to the founders of the nation in an appropriately stern and severe form, but softened them by adapting them to the o i<)4 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO softening of manners. Equally gallant is the " shepherd " of the Greek Bucolic poets, Bion and Moschus, " wasting away with the most delicate love." He makes the general observation on Greek and Latin literature, that the boundary between verse and prose was so strictly guarded on both sides that no ancient writer ever com- posed both orations and poems a rule to which perhaps the only exception is the wretched verses (ridenda poemata) of Cicero : and Vico tried to explain this fact by the democratic habits which compelled orators studiously to avoid the cultivation of lofty and fanciful modes of expression, which would have puzzled the people and hindered their full and clear comprehension of the point at issue. Vico does not treat Roman literature so fully as Greek, which provided him with much more primitive documents. But he detected certain analogies between the origins of Latin and Greek literature. The first poets and authors in the Latin language were the Salii, sacred poets ; and this was natural in the beginning of a nation's culture ; for in the primitive religious period the gods are the only object of praise. And just as the earliest fragments of Latin known to us, the remains of the hymns of the Salii, give an impression of hexameter verse, so the same metre is felt in the records of Romans who celebrated triumphs, such as the " duello magno diri- mendo, regibus subiugandis " of Lucius Aemilius Regillus and the " fuditfugatprosternit maximas legiones " of Acilius Glabrio. The first Roman poets, too, sang true stories : this was the case with Livius Andronicus and his Romanid containing the annals of early Rome, and with Naevius, and later Ennius, who described the Punic wars. Satire also was levelled against real and for the most part notorious persons. The Romans however differed from the Greeks in advancing with a more measured step and not making the swift and abrupt transition from barbarism HOMER AND PRIMITIVE POETRY 195 to effeminacy : so that they entirely lost the history of their gods (which Varro called the " obscure period " of Rome) and preserved their heroic history, extending down to the Publilian and Petelian laws, in common speech only. In its greatest manifestations the literature of Rome is the work of cultivated poets like Virgil, whom Vico admires for his profound knowledge of heroic anti- quity, but says of him that so far as poetical power is concerned he is not to be compared with Homer ; a verdict agreeing with that of Plutarch and Longinus, but in opposition to the view of neo-classical criticism. Another example of cultivated and reflective poetry is to be found in Horace, who like Pindar in the pompous period of Greece composed his odes at the most " ostenta- tious " epoch of Roman history, the Augustan age. The Biblical literature would have given Vico materials of great value for the study of primitive poetry ; and he actually did move a few steps towards it when he observed that poetry was the primitive language of all nations " including the Hebrews " ; and that Moses made no use of the esoteric wisdom of the Egyptian priests and wrote his history " in a style which has much in common with that of Homer and often surpasses him in sublimity of expression." But Vico drops the subject at once, as if he instinctively guessed what might come of treating the Pentateuch as he had done the Iliad, and Moses like Homer. So he prefers to wax enthusiastic over the phrase in which God describes himself to Moses "Ego sum qui sum," to which he ascribes a metaphysical profundity only attained by the Greeks when Plato conceived God as rt> 5v, and unknown to the Latins down to the latest period, for the word ens is not pure Latin but belongs to debased Latin. Or he contents himself with emphatically pointing out that at a time when Greece was under the sway of a superstitious and natural law, God gave to his people a code " so full of weight as regards the dogmas of ig6 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO divinity and so full of humanity as regards the practice of justice, that not even in the humanest period of Greek history could a Plato have conceived or an Aristides executed it " ; a code " whose ten chief enactments contain an eternal and universal justice founded upon the excellent conception of a purified human nature, and are capable of forming by habituation a character such as the maxims of the greatest philosophers could only with great difficulty form by ratiocination ; whence Theophrastus called the Hebrews philosophers by nature." The success that attended the " will to believe " was all the more striking if as we suspect Vico had read the abhorred Spinoza's Tractatus Theologico-politicus, where the Hebrew prophets, while their " piety " is recognised, are said to be entirely devoid of " sublime thoughts." Spinoza maintains that they only taught " very simple things which any one could easily discover, and adorned these with a style and supported them by reasons most calculated to move the mind of the multitude to devotion towards God " ; and that the laws revealed by God to Moses were " nothing but the laws of the particular government of the Jews " : and he sets out to examine the text of the Bible and the problem of the authenticity of the Pentateuch and the respective authors of its various books. We might almost venture to say that it was Spinoza's Biblical criticism that suggested to Vico his criticism of the composition and spirit of the Homeric poems ; but that the latter, after passing in this way from sacred to profane history, from Moses to Homer, set his face stubbornly against the opposite transition from Homer to Moses, from profane history to sacred. CHAPTER XVII THE HISTORY OF ROME AND THE RISE OF DEMOCRACY HEROIC society in the period of youthful vigour above described contains within itself, rigorously repressed, and in fact made into a support, the element of opposition ; the slaves, clients or vassals, that is to say the plebs. But this element little by little succeeds in detaching itself from and opposing itself to the society, engaging it in a continual and undisguised conflict, so as by degrees to overthrow this old society and give life and form to a new society of which it is itself the material : a democratic society, the popular republic. Vico believes this process to be uniform in all peoples ; but since references to histories other than that of Rome are either absent or very vague (he hardly mentions the origin of the Athenian democracy) the description of this process appears in the pages of the New Science as a fragment of Roman history, or as we should nowadays call it the social history of Rome. Vico's guesses about the population and primitive culture of Italy are of no great importance. The subject belongs rather to archaeology and ethnography than to history, and Vico did not make a special study of it. In the De antiquissima sapientia Italorum he had provided the origins of Rome with a basis in an Italian civilisation of high antiquity, earlier than the Greek and derived 197 jg8 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO from Egypt, which the Romans absorbed in a manner agreeing with their character ; by rejecting, that is to say, its theoretical hypotheses while taking over their practical results, just as they adopted from the Etruscans their tragic religion and their art of tactics, and as they later adopted laws from Athens and Sparta. In this way their ignorance and savagery remained unchanged, and hence they spoke the language of philosophers without being philosophical. In his later writings Vico still for a time maintained the priority and independence of the earliest Italian civilisation as regards that of Greece, and considered Pythagoras less as the founder than as the student of Italian wisdom. Finally, however, he seems to have given up this view, just as he definitely abandoned that which explained the origins of Roman religion, language, customs and law by the imitation of foreign peoples and " frankly confessed that he had been in error here " owing to the example of Plato's Cratylus. What conditions brought about the rise of Rome Vico does not precisely say. He is certain that if Rome and the world did not begin together, at least the foundation of Rome was a new beginning. The point of departure which he assumes is the asylum of Romulus, consisting of the " families " of fathers who gave their hospitality to wanderers and made them into famuli. There was no Trojan colonisation ; Vico knows Bochart's treatise (1663) criticising the legend of Aeneas's arrival in Italy and accepts its conclusions, which only con- firm the doubts already entertained by certain ancient historians. For Vico, the Trojan origin of Rome is a legend sprung from the union of two different examples of national arrogance : that of the Greeks, who made such a noise about the Trojan war and forced their Aeneas into the history of Rome, and that of the Romans, who accepted him in order to boast of a distinguished foreign origin. The legend moreover could not have arisen THE HISTORY OF ROME /pp much before the time of the war with Pyrrhus, when Rome began to acquire a taste for things Greek. In order to explain the infusion of Greek names and myths into the story of primitive Rome and the similarity of the Roman alphabet to the ancient Greek, Vico would incline rather to the hypothesis that early in their history the Romans conquered and destroyed some Greek colony on the Latin coast, of which all trace has since been lost in the mists of antiquity ; and that through receiving its inhabitants in Rome as refugees and allies, they came under the influence of several Hellenic traditions and customs. \ Vico does not spend much time over the historical events of the -royal period. Here in fact lay one of the chief differences between his criticism and that which had already been originated and was continued after his time dealing with the first centuries of Roman history. Vico aims not at substituting historical for legendary anecdotes but at understanding the essence of institutions and the ways in which they change. He uses two guiding principles, as we have seen in considering the royal period : first, that it was a period not of monarchy but of aristocracy and that therefore the type of heroic society or the patriarchal republic is applicable to it ; secondly, that the names of the kings are symbols or " poetic characters " for the institutions of this society . In Vico's judgment, as we have had occasion to observe, the constitution of Servius Tullius should not be considered the basis of popular liberty, as the later Romans con- sidered it ; it was really the basis of the liberty of the feudal lords, since by it the patricians granted to the plebeians the bonitary tenure of their land together with the duty of paying rent to and serving at their own expense in war themselves, the patricians. And Junius Brutus, in driving out the Tarquins and replacing them by two consuls or annual aristocratic kings, restored to 200 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO the Roman republic its primitive form ; that is to say, he delivered the lords from the domination of their tyrants but left the people under the domination of their lords. The patricians' oppression of the plebeians after the restoration of Junius Brutus and the struggles and resistance caused by it constitute the soul of the new development and contain the secret of the greatness of Rome, the " key to universal Roman history," clams historiae Romanae universae. Polybius's explanation of this greatness is too vague. He describes it as due to the virtue or the religion of the patricians and relates the facts of this virtue rather than their cause. Vico also criticises Machiavelli, at one time because he adduces certain civil and military institutions as the cause of Rome's greatness without investigating the cause of those institutions, that is to say the character of Roman society : at another time for adducing what was only a partial cause, the high spirit of the plebeians. He thinks Plutarch worst of all, since envy of the virtue and wisdom of Rome leads him to ascribe her greatness to fortune. The fact was that Rome subjugated the other cities of Latium and then Italy and the world because her heroism was still young, while among the other Latin peoples it had begun to decay. Thanks to this youthful vigour the patricians were strong enough to preserve their order and the religion which formed its foundation and safe- guard (the nobles, Vico observes at this point, were always and everywhere religious, so that the first sign of contempt for religion among them is a symptom of national decad- ence) ; the plebeians were spirited enough to demand a share in religion, auspices and all civil rights ; the lawyers, lastly, were wise enough to interpret the old laws and apply them to any new case that might arise, and strove with all their might to alter the text of these laws as little and as slowly as possible. These were the chief causes THE HISTORY OF ROME aoi of the growth and permanence of the Roman empire ; for in all its political changes it contrived to remain faithful to its principles. Prowess in war was another result of the rivalry of the orders ; since the nobles were naturally consecrated to the safety of their country, as the only means of preserving the civil privileges of their order, and the plebeians accomplished brilliant deeds in order to prove themselves worthy of patrician honours. And when the Romans extended their conquests and their victories over the whole world, they made use of four rules which they had already applied to the plebeians within Rome itself. They reduced barbarian provinces to the position of clients by planting colonies in them : they granted civilised provinces bonitary tenure of their land : to Italy they gave the quiritary tenure : and to the municipia, the towns which had earned better treat- ment, they accorded the same equality with themselves which the plebs had finally won. The result of the first struggles, in which the point at issue was according to Vico the bonitary possession of land (a right already recognised in the constitution of Servius, but cancelled by the nobles in return for arrears of rent), is seen in the tribunate, and later, when the plebeians claimed the right of quiritary tenure, in the laws of the Twelve Tables, ratifying this plebeian victory. But the law of the Twelve Tables represented at the same time the victory of written law, the end of the secrecy with which the laws had been fenced round by the patricians, who alone knew, understood, interpreted and therefore applied them as they thought fit. This publica- tion and codification of a written law cannot have been benevolently granted by the patricians out of that anxiety " not to despise the wishes of the plebs " of which Livy speaks ; rather they must have resisted it with all the stubbornness which Dionysius of Halicarnassus describes and expresses in the phrase " mores patrios servandos, 202 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO leges ferri non oportere " (our fathers' customs must be preserved, and laws must not be passed). Later historians decorated the origin of the Twelve Tables with various legends. They told, among other things, of the mission sent by the decemvirs to Athens to bring back new laws : a tale given by Livy and Diony- sius, but unknown to Polybius and discredited by Cicero. How, in the savage aloofness of primitive nations, between whom oral communication could only have been instituted by the necessities of warfare, alliances and commerce, could the fame of Solon's wisdom have crossed the seas from distant Attica to Rome ? How could the Romans of that time have possessed such accurate knowledge of the quality of Athenian law as to believe it capable of setting at rest the strife between their plebeians and their nobles ? How could ambassadors have travelled between Greece and those Romans whom seventy-two years later the Greeks of Tarentum could still maltreat as strangers ? And what shall we say of ambassadors who returned carrying with them the Greek laws from Athens but without knowing what they meant ; so that but for the coincidence by which Hermodorus the pupil of Heraclitus, an exile from his country, happened to be in Rome, the Romans would have been unable to make any use of this unintelligible and inaccessible treasure ? Again, how could Hermodorus have translated the laws into Latin of such purity that Diodorus Siculus pronounced it devoid of the slightest taint of Hellenism, and with a perfection unattained by any subsequent writer of any period in a translation from the Greek ? How did he contrive to clothe Greek ideas in Latin words so appro- priate (for instance, auctoritas] that Greeks, Dio Cassius among them, declare that their own language has no corresponding words by which to explain them ? Hera- clitus's letter to Hermodorus must have been conveyed by the same mail that served Pythagoras in his distant THE HISTORY OF ROME 203 voyages up and down the world : it is, in fact, an imposture of the first quality, and the whole story of the Athenian origin of these laws is due to the arrogance of scholars, who derived them first from the other Latin peoples (such as the Aequi), then from the Greek cities of Italy, then from Sparta and finally from Athens, with whose name, thanks to the renown of the Athenian philosophers, they were at last satisfied. No doubt, the laws of the Twelve Tables present resemblances not only to Athenian or Spartan laws but to those of various nations, the Mosaic code among others ; but this is due to the uni- formity of national history. No doubt, the decemvirs were in antiquity supposed to have originated laws bearing clear traces of Greek influence, such as that prohibiting the Greek style of mourning at funerals : but this is because as we have seen the decemviral legislation, like the names of the various kings, became a " poetic char- acter," and to it were referred all laws later recorded in the public archives which tended to the equalisation of liberty. But the original law of the Twelve Tables, with its primitive rudeness, inhumanity, cruelty and ferocity, which agrees so ill with the period of highly- developed civilisation at Athens, is a document of the greatest value for the ancient natural law of the Latin peoples, and the customs which had existed among them from the age of Saturn. Quiritary tenure of land and a written code of law once gained, the struggle recommenced over the question of the right of marriage. The true meaning of this contest has been lost among the absurdities written on the subject by the ancient historians themselves, in the belief that its basis was the desire on the part of the plebeians (who were little more than wretched and common slaves) to be allowed to form connexions with the nobles. This error has made Roman history even less credible than the legendary history of Greece ; for if we do not know the 204 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO meaning of the latter, the former is in opposition to the true order of human desires. It shows us a plebs aspiring first to nobility, secondly to offices and magistracies, and finally to wealth : whereas men desire first of all wealth, then offices in the state, and lastly nobility. What the Roman plebs really claimed was not " connubia cum patribus " but " connubia patrum " : not the right of connexion by marriage with the nobles a claim which they would not have wished to make, and was at bottom unimportant but the right of contracting solemn marriages as the nobles did. For without such solemn marriages, without privilege of the auspices, the plebeians were in fact unable to enjoy the quiritary tenure of land and to transmit it to their families, deprived as they were of descent, kindred and relatives. The demand for connubia was, in a word, simply equivalent to a demand for the rights of citizens, and it was satisfied by the Canuleian law. The next demand of the plebeians was for privileges depending on public rights. Of these they gained first the impenum together with the consulship, and lastly the offices of priest and pontifex, which carried with them knowledge of the law. In .this way the system of seig- neurial liberty planned by Servius Tullius grew into a system of popular liberty, and the census, which was originally paid to the patricians, was paid hereafter into the public treasury, out of which the expenses of the plebeians in war were paid. The tribunes now proceeded to demand the power of legislation ; for the previous laws, the Horatian and Hortensian, had not made plebiscites binding on the whole people, except upon the two special occasions which led to the secession of the plebs to the Aventine and Janiculum respectively. This new victory, which established the superiority of the plebs and trans- formed the aristocratic into a popular republic, was the Publilian law due to the Dictator Publilius Philo and THE HISTORY OF ROME 203 decreeing that plebiscites should " be binding on all the Quirites " (omnes quirites tenerent). The authority of the senate came out of the struggle somewhat impaired, for while formerly the fathers had acted as " auctores " for the deliberations of the people, they were now the pro- posers of law to the people, which the latter then approved according to the formula submitted to them by the senate, or else " antiquated " the proposal (antique, to vote against a measure) and decided to make no innovation. Besides this, the plebs won the last office to be conceded to them, that of censor. The Petelian law, a few years later, abolished the last remnant of feudalism, the bond (nexus) which made the plebeians the bondmen of the nobles for debt and often compelled them to spend their lives working in their private prisons. Some time later, when the division between patriciate and plebs with the corresponding comitia curiata and tributa was replaced by Fabius Maximus's division accord- ing to the property of citizens, who were now grouped into three classes of senators, knights and plebeians, the order of the nobles disappeared entirely: "senator" and " knight " were no longer synonymous with "patrician," nor "plebeian" with "base-born." The Senate however preserved sovereign dominion over the finances of the Roman Empire, though the Empire itself had passed to the plebeians ; and thanks to the so- called " senatusconsultum ultimum " it maintained this dominion by force of arms as long as Rome remained a popular republic. Whenever the people attempted to take it into their own hands, the Senate armed the Consuls, who forthwith declared traitors and put to death plebeian tribunes who had originated these attempts. This may be explained as a right of feudal sovereignty subject to a higher sovereign, a view con- firmed by the language of Scipio Nasica when he armed the people against Tiberius Gracchus : " whoever wishes 206 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO for the safety of the republic, let him follow the consul " (qui rempublicam salvam velit, consulem sequatur}. And indeed, once the road to office was opened by law to the multitude which rules in a popular republic, there was nothing left in time of peace but to contest its rule not by laws but by force of arms, and for those in power to pass laws for self-enrichment like the Gracchan agrarian measures, resulting at once in civil wars at home and unjust wars abroad. With the triumph of the plebs and the change of con- stitution from aristocratic to popular, the whole face of society changed. In the first place, the aspect of the family changed. Here, during the rule of the patriciate, testamentary succession was admitted only at a late date and was easily cancelled, in order to keep wealth in patrician hands : kindred even in the seventh degree excluded the emancipated son from the paternal heritage : emancipation had the effect of a penalty : legitimising was not allowed : and it is doubtful whether a woman could inherit. But in the democratic society, since for the plebs wealth, strength and power all depended on the number of their children, family feeling began to grow up, and the praetors began to consider its claims and to satisfy them by means of the " bonorum possessiones," thus remedying the faults or shortcomings of wills and facilitating the diffusion of wealth, the only thing desired by the common people. A change took place, again, in the meaning of the institutions of property. The civil tenure was no longer a matter of public right, but was dispersed among the various private tenures of the citizens now forming the body of the popular state. " Eminent " tenure no longer signifies the strongest kind of tenure, unencumbered by any actual charge, even a public charge, but applies simply to an estate free from any private charge. Quiritary tenure is no longer that of which the noble THE HISTORY OF ROME 207 was feudal lord and under the obligation to aid his client, the plebeian, if ousted from it : it has become a private civil tenure, capable of being defended by a civil suit as opposed to the bonitary which could be maintained by possession only. The forms of legal process were pruned of the luxurious growth of fictions, solemn formulae and symbolic acts, simplified and rationalised : the intellect, the thought of the legislator was brought into play and the citizens conformed to an idea of a common rational utility, under- stood as spiritual in value. Causes, which were originally formulae safeguarded by accurate and precise language, became affairs or negotiations solemnised by agreement and, in the case of transference of tenure, by natural tradition ; and it was only in contracts said to be com- pleted by word of mouth, that is to say in stipulations, that the safeguards remained " causes " in the strict ancient meaning of the word. Thus the certitude of the law, when the human reason was fully developed, passed into the truth of ideas determined by the circumstances of fact, a " formula devoid of any particular form " (formula naturae, as Varro calls it) which, like a light, informs in all the minutest details of their surface the details of fact over which it extends. In popular republics the ruling principle is the aequum bonum, natural equity. The harsh punishments of the periods of domestic monarchy and heroic society (the laws of the Twelve Tables condemned those who set fire to another's crops to be burnt alive, perjurers to be thrown from the Tarpeian rock, and insolvent debtors to be cut in pieces while living) were replaced by milder penalties, since the multitude, whose members are weak, is naturally disposed to clemency. Laws, which under the aristocracy were few, inflexible and religiously observed, multiplied under the democracy and became liable to change and modification. The 208 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO Spartans, who preserved their aristocracy, said that at Athens they had many laws and wrote them ; at Sparta few, but they obeyed them. The Roman plebs, like the Athenian, passed new laws every day, and the attempt by Sulla, the leader of the noble party, to reduce them by the institution of " quaestiones perpetuae " or permanent courts was in vain, for after his time laws were again multiplied. War itself, which was under the aristocratic republics very cruel and resulted in the destruction of conquered towns and the reduction of the vanquished to the condition of labourers scattered over the country-side and cultivat- ing it on behalf of the victors, was mitigated by the popular republics, which while they deprived the conquered of the rights of heroic society left them in possession of the natural rights of the human race. Empires grew, since a popular republic is much more adapted to conquest than an aristocratic, and a monarchy most of all. But with all this humanisation of customs, the power of wise rule, political virtue, diminished. The ancient patricians enforced a rigid respect for law ; and each, possessing a large share of the public utility, set his own minor personal interests below this greater particular interest, guaranteed as it was by the state. Hence all courageously defended and wisely consulted for the good of the state. In a popular state on the other hand since the citizens controlled the state property by dividing it among themselves into as many small portions as there were citizens in the body of the people, and through the causes which produced that form of state, ease, paternal affection, conjugal love and desire of life, men were led to consider the smallest details favourable to their own private interest ; that is to regard nothing but the aequum bonum, the only interest of which a multitude is capable. At this point arises spontaneously a new form of government, which has long been preparing and has now THE HISTORY OF ROME 209 become inevitable, namely monarchy. The ordinary political writers make monarchy originate, without any of the numerous and complex causes which are necessary to produce it, at the very outset of human history, " as a frog," says Vico, " is born of a summer shower." Still less did it originate artificially by the royal law which Tribonian believes to have deprived the Roman people of its free and sovereign power and conferred it upon Octavius Augustus. The law which brought monarchy into being was a natural law whose formula of eternal validity is as follows : when in a popular republic every one seeks his private interest only and presses the public forces into its service at risk of destruction to the state, to preserve the latter from ruin a man must arise, as Augustus did at Rome (who as Tacitus says " received under his sovereign power the whole state, worn out with civil wars, taking the title of Princeps " : qui cuncta bellis civilibus fessa nomine principis sub imperium accepit) : a single man, who by force of arms takes in hand all the affairs of the state and leaves his subjects to look after their own affairs or after any public business he may entrust to them ; surrounding himself with a small number of statesmen as a cabinet to discuss public questions or principles of civil equity. Such a monarch is welcomed by nobles and plebeians alike : by the nobles, who after having been already humiliated by their subjection to plebeian rule abandon their ancient aristocratic claim to sovereignty and think only of securing a comfortable life ; and by the plebeians, who after an experiment in anarchy or unbridled demagogy (than which no tyranny is worse, since it produces as many tyrants as there are bold and dissolute men in the state) are led by their own misfortunes to welcome peace and protection. Monarchy is then a new form of popular government. In order that a powerful man may become sovereign, it is necessary that the people shall take his side, and that p 210 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO he should rule in a popular manner ; making all his subjects equal, humiliating the great to protect the multitude against their oppression, keeping the people satisfied and content as regards the necessaries of life and the enjoyment of natural liberty, and employing a well-balanced system of concessions and privileges granted sometimes to whole classes (in which case they are called " privileges of liberty ") sometimes to particular persons, by promoting into a higher class men of unusual merit and exceptional virtues. In monarchy, a " humane " government no less than democracy, the process of humanisation or softening of customs and laws, already begun under popular republics, still continues. The rigid bonds of the patriarchal family and kinship relax further. The Emperors, who tended to be overshadowed by the splendours of the nobility, made efforts to promote the rights of human nature common to nobles and plebeians. Augustus strove to safeguard the trusteeships by which formerly property had passed to persons incapable of inheritance thanks only to the conscientiousness of the injured heir ; he transformed such understandings from a right into a necessity, by obliging heirs to execute them. A number of senatusconsulta followed which placed cognati (re- lations generally) on a level with agnati (relations through the father). Finally, Justinian abolished the difference between property inherited and property in the hands of trustees, confused the Falcidian quarter with the Trebellian and put cognati and agnati on precisely the same footing as regards inheritance " ab intestate." The latest Roman law was so entirely on the side of testaments that, while originally these could be broken for the slightest cause, they now had to be interpreted in the way most adapted to secure their validity. Once the " cyclopean " right of the father over the persons of his children had disappeared, his economic right over property acquired by them dis- THE HISTORY OF ROME 211 appeared also ; and hence the emperors first introduced the peculium castrense (property obtained during military service) to attract young men to war, then the peculium quasicastrense, to attract them into the praetorian guard, and finally to satisfy those who were neither soldiers nor scholars the peculium adventitium. They deprived the patria potestas of its influence over adoptions, now no longer restricted to the small circle of relations ; they uniformly countenanced formal adoption (arrogatio) which was somewhat difficult owing to the difficulty of a father's becoming a subordinate member of another family; they considered emancipation as a benefit and gave to legitimization " by a subsequent marriage " all the efficacy of solemn wedlock. The imperium paternum, as an arrogant title seeming to detract from the imperial majesty, was altered into patria potestas. The humane tendencies of the monarchs extended moreover to that part of the ancient " family " which consisted of slaves : for the emperors restrained the cruelty of masters towards these, and benefited them by increasing the force and decreasing the solemnity of manumission ; and citizen rights, which were given originally only to distinguished foreigners who had deserved well of the Roman people, were granted to every one born in Rome, even of a slave father provided his mother were free or enfranchised. Punishments were also made milder, and the monarchs distinguished themselves by the gracious title of " clement." The letter of the law always tended to be more freely interpreted in the light of natural equity, and it may be said that Constantine absolutely cancelled the letter when he laid down the principle that any particular motive of equity should override the law. Thus was attained the precise opposite of the " privilegia ne irroganto " of the Twelve Tables (" that no exceptions be made ") : all privileges were exceptions to the law dictated by some particular merit in the facts which 212 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO lifted them out of the sphere of legal generalisations. The restriction of rights to particular peoples was by degrees abolished : under Caracalla the whole Roman world was converted into a single Rome, since great monarchs desire the whole world to become one city, according to the thought of Alexander the Great, when he said that for him all the world was a single city of which his phalanx was the citadel. The praetor's edict gives place, under Hadrian, to the " perpetual edict " of Salvius Julianus, almost exclusively composed of provincial edicts. With monarchy, the natural law of races gives place to the natural law of nations; and hence this political, social and juridical form is the most suitable to human nature at its fullest rational development. Here too, as we have already had occasion to remark, we reach again after a long process the unity which existed in the person of the primitive father under domestic monarchy ; and the course of national history must be considered as absolutely complete. To go further is impossible : the only possibility, at this stage of the highest human civilisation and refinement, is corruption, the return of barbarism as a " barbarism of reflection " and a relapse into a kind of new state of nature, to return once more into a new and heroic barbarism. CHAPTER XVIII THE RETURN OF BARBARISM I THE MIDDLE AGES OF this kind of " reflux " Vico mentions and examines only one instance : the period of European history which had in his own days for the first time been marked out definitely by historians and given the name (though Vico does not use it) of the " Middle Ages." That this was a period of decadence and barbarism was certainly not a new thought for consciousness : for, especially in the humanistic period, a general feeling of estrangement and repulsion had been felt towards these centuries of " middle and low Latinity " in which the treasures of the classical literatures were neglected and scattered, and humane studies either lost their vigour or disappeared completely. This consciousness, general on the part of cultivated Europe, was especially full and vivid in Italy ; for that country could never forget that though for other peoples the Middle Ages had seen the rise of their fortunes, power and civilisation, for her they had meant the end of Rome's greatness, the humiliation of her name before the arrogant Vandal, Visigoth and Lombard, the devastation of rich cities, and the destruc- tion of majestic monuments whose miserable wreckage could be seen on every hand. Machiavelli had opened his Histories with a famous and striking picture of the general change which followed the fall of the Western Empire. But to pass in review the ruins or to collect 213 2i 4 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO the antiquities of the Middle Ages was not the way to penetrate into the spirit of the period, any more than to note a man's faults and the marks which distinguish him from another is the same thing as understanding the soul of either. Vico was the first to understand the soul of the Middle Ages, that is to say, the mental, social and cultural constitution of the period. Though living in a part of Italy rich not only in docu- ments but in survivals of the Middle Age, Vico confesses that this second period of barbarism is much more obscure to him than the first, and that it is only the first that has enabled him to throw light upon the second. This he expressed by the mere fact that he named the period " the second barbarism," or the " return " or " reflux " of barbarism, and thus considered it as an instance of his ideal law of reflux. The Middle Ages seemed to him both a representation of the primitive conditions of life, and in consequence a reproduction of the social process develop- ing out of them. It was a view as original as it was rich in truth : and it is no objection to it to say that Vico reveals the generic characters rather than the particular traits of the Middle Ages, because we know that the problem he set before himself was precisely the investiga- tion of generic characters or uniformities, and that he avoided history properly so called in order to escape a dilemma between science and faith, between the purely immanental conception of history, excluding revelation and miracle, and the purely transcendent conception, miraculous and therefore difficult to treat in a scientific manner. Even in our own times, it is a fact worth noticing that we have seen a recrudescence of this attempt to harmonise religion and history by abstracting from the individual aspect of events and reducing history to a history of institutions and uniformities. 1 In this position 1 See my preface to Sorel's Reflections on Violence (Italian tr., Bari, 1 99), PP- xxii-xxvii. THE RETURN OF BARBARISM "5 assumed by the problem in Vice's mind we may see the reason for the fact, which some have thought very strange in a Catholic, that he lays no stress on Christianity and when he encounters it at the outset of the Middle Ages dismisses it in a few words ; saying that God having by superhuman ways shown clearly the truth of the Christian religion, when he opposed the virtue of the martyrs the power of Rome, and the doctrine of the Fathers, to- gether with the miracles, to the empty wisdom of Gree. and knowing that armed nations must arise on every hand ready to fight for the divinity of that religions author, permitted the birth of a new order o civilisation among the nations, in order that the true religion might be established according to the natural course affairs We must be content then with the resemblances observed by Vico between mediaeval society and that of the early centuries of Greece and Rome, and not take offence if his exemplifications and proofs very often seem fallacious and fanciful. His main historical thought as we know already is robust enough to pass over the errors or to live in the midst of them unimpaired. We see (to reconstruct his story or picture, with some rearrangement) in the Middle Ages groups of dwellings everywhere springing up on the mountains, each dominated bv its fortress as in the divine age of the cyclopes ; for the unhappy people, ground down by the violence barbarian invasions and intestine strife, had no other means of defence. The most ancient cities built in the Middle Ages and almost all capitals of states are as a matter of fact placed upon heights ; all new seigneur formed at the time were called " castella " by the Italians ; and this perhaps is also the reason why nobles were called men " born in a high or conspicuous position (summo, illustri loco naii) while the plebeians living in the plains below were " born in a low or obscure place " (two, obscuro 216 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO loco nati). We find asyla or sanctuaries again open especially with the ecclesiastical lords, who were in humanity in advance of their savage times ; here took refuge the oppressed and the terrified, to seek protection for person or property. Hence in Germany, a country which must have been wilder than the other parts of Europe, there remained almost more ecclesiastical than secular lords. A famous example of these political formations was the Abbey of St. Laurence at A versa in the kingdom of Naples, with which was incorporated that of St. Laurence at Capua. This monastery governed either directly or by abbots or monks dependent upon it no less than a hundred and ten churches in Campania, Samnium, Apulia and the ancient Calabria, from the river Volturnus to the gulf of Tarentum ; the abbots of St. Laurence were lords or barons of almost the whole of this country. The small chapels which they built in mountainous and remote places for the celebration of the mass and other religious offices became natural sanctuaries for the population, and they built their houses round them : and this is the reason why in Europe so many cities, lands and castles bear the names of saints, and why the churches are the most ancient monuments of this period. Consequently we also find feudalism, not establishing itself in Europe for the first time, but appearing once more. It has been mistakenly believed to be a relic of Roman law after its destruction by the barbarians (such is the theory of Oldenorp and all other jurists) whereas really Roman law itself arose out of the ruins of the feudalism of early Latin barbarism, and mediaeval feudalism was not a new law of the European nations, but a very ancient law renewed by the last barbarism. This feudalism is far from being the " vile matter " which Cujas calls it : it is a heroic matter, one worthy to be celebrated by the most erudite and profound learning of Greece and Rome. And to what is it due, if not to this essential unity of nature, that the choicest expressions of THE RETURN OF BARBARISM 217 Roman law, which Cujas himself allows to mitigate the barbarism of feudalistic learning, are so precisely adequate to express the properties and attributes of the system that no better terminology could be desired ? With the Middle Ages, then, we return to the funda- mental division between heroes and slaves, between " viri " or " barons "(" varones " is the word still used for men, " viri," in Spanish) and mere " homines " as the vassals were called : between " patres " or " patrons " and serfs. The learned students of feudalism who trans- late "feudum" by "clientela" are really giving something much more than a good linguistical equivalent ; they are unawares giving a historical definition of the feoff. The first feoffs of the Middle Ages were necessarily personal, like the first clientelae of Romulus : a form of vassalage still extant in Vico's time in the north, especially in Poland, where the " kmet" were a kind of slaves who were often used as stakes in their lord's games, and passed with their families into the hands of the winner. Then came rustic feoffs, real in character and consisting in uncultivated land assigned by the victors to the conquered for their sustenance, while they themselves kept the cultivated land : these feoffs were called by the feudalists, with a new elegance of Latinity and an equally sound historical truth, " beneficia." The ancient " nexi " were the new "liege" or bound men, who were compelled to join in all the friendships and quarrels of their lord, and supplied what in Rome was called " opera militaris," and in the Middle Ages " militare servitium." The feudal bond extended itself to larger political relations, and just as conquered kings became allies or socii of Rome and " upheld the majesty of the Roman people," so there were sovereign feoffs subordinated to higher sovereignties Whose representatives, the great kings and lords of large kingdoms and numerous provinces, took the title of " majesty." ai8 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO Republics became aristocratic once more in government if not in constitution : this is admitted by political writers, among others by Bodin, who even says that his own kingdom of France was purely aristocratic in constitution under the Merovingian and Capetian dynasties. Till the end of the sixteenth century living witnesses to the past remained in the aristocratic kingdoms of Sweden and Denmark ; and Poland, mentioned above, preserved the same constitution down to Vico's own time. The first state parliaments of Europe must have consisted like Romulus's senate of the elders of the nobility (seniores, hence seigneurs) ; and were armed courts of barons or peers like the comitia curiata of old. In these parliaments were decided feudal causes concerning rights or successions or the devolution of feoffs through felony or default of heirs : which causes, confirmed many times by these judgments, formed the customs of feudalism. Vico saw a relic of these parliaments in the Sacred Royal Council at Naples, the president of which assumed the title of " Sacred Royal Majesty," as the councillors did the title of " milites," and whose sentences admitted of no appeal to any other tribunal, but only a request for revision by the Council itself. The governments, beside being aristocratic, were enveloped in an atmosphere of religion to such an extent that not only were bishops and abbots very often, as we saw, feudatories, but feudatories and sovereigns adorned themselves freely with religious insignia ; Catholic kings everywhere, in order to defend the Christian religion whose protectors they were, wore the dalmatic of the diaconate, consecrated their persons (whence the title " Sacred Royal Majesty " ), and took rank in the church, as Hugh Capet took the title of Count and Abbot of Paris ; thus as we see from the earliest documents the French lords called themselves dukes and abbots or counts and abbots simultaneously. These early Christian kings THE RETURN OF BARBARISM aig were the first to institute armed religious orders, by the help of which they defended Catholicism against Arians, Saracens and other infidels. " Pur a et pia bella " returned once more as in the heroic period ; the globe surmounted by the cross worn by the Christian potentates on their crowns recalls the cross upon the standards in the holy wars or crusades. Heroic slavery returns, and lasts a long time among Christian nations because, considering war as the judgment of God, the victors believed the vanquished to be abandoned by God and held them no better than beasts (thus the Christians called the Turks " dogs " and were in turn called " pigs " by them). The ancients deprived the conquered of all things human and divine. The new barbarians on occupying a city endeavoured above everything to search out and carry off the tombs or relics of saints, which the peoples of that time buried and concealed with all possible care ; and thus almost all translations of relics took place at this time. A trace of this custom survives in the rule by which a conquered nation must buy back from the vic- torious generals all the bells in the cities they have taken. Analogous resemblances may be found in the juridical regulation of property. The primary division of property in feudal law is that into feudal goods and allodial goods. Allodial tenure was in origin a highly secure right, un- encumbered by any external charge, even a public one ; and applied to property directly acquired or conquered by the patricians or barons. Feudal tenure required the approval of the lord by whom it had been granted. Allodial tenure thus corresponded to quiritary ex Optimo iure, and feudal to bonitary ; and it was only when later in modern Europe as previously in ancient Rome a new census and treasury were formed, and when allodial property was made subject to public charges, that it could be contemptuously described as " goods of the spindle " as opposed to feudal, " goods of the lance." Thus, to 220 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO take an example, the provinces which were later incor- porated into the French kingdom had formerly been sovereign principalities feudally dependent upon the ruler of the said kingdom ; their sovereign princes being free from all public charge in the tenure of their (allodial) possessions. Later, when through succession, rebellion or failure of heirs these provinces became part of the kingdom, the property was made liable to taxation and tribute ; the tenure ex optima iure was confused with private non- feudal tenure subject to these charges, and allodials in the noble sense of the word were identified with allodials in the common sense. The later students of feudalism missed the point of the primitive distinction just as the late Roman jurists forgot the meaning of tenure ex optima iure. To the feudal tenure belonged emphyteosis (so that the allodial right ultimately signified both what the vassal paid to the sovereign and the planter to his immediate lord) : " commendations," identical with the ancient clientela : the " census " by which the vassals were bound to serve their lords in war (the tribu- taries, angarii OTperangarii, being equivalent to the Roman assidui) : the " precaria," which must originally have been land granted by lords in response to the prayers of the poor : and " libelli " or transferences of non-movable property which in this agricultural economy took the place of commerce. The exclusion of women from inherit- ance, which went back to the beginnings of Roman law, was renewed in the form of the " salic law " in Germany and among all the early barbarian nations of Europe, though it preserved its force only in France and Savoy. Punishments were cruel; death was called the "ordinary penalty." But there was in the Middle Ages no real penal law and procedure dealing with private offences. The murder of a plebeian was committed either by his own lord, whom nobody could accuse, or by another lord, who could indemnify the man's own lord for his loss THE RETURN OF BARBARISM 221 as if he had been a slave. This custom was still in force in Poland, Lithuania, Denmark, Sweden and Norway. Under the name of " canonical purgations " (though unrecognised by canon law) certain kinds of divine judg- ments or duels were practised throughout Europe ; and private vengeance flourished down to the time of Bartolo. In judgments concerned with allodial rights, the lords met in arms ; and in the kingdom of Naples even in Vico's own days barons avenged intrusions upon their own feoffs on the part of other barons not by civil suits but by duels. In a society ruled by force, what wonder that the robbers of the heroic age returned, and that " pirate " became a title of nobility ? Never has the fortune of kingdoms been so various or so inconstant. The Roman law of Justinian, penetrated as it was by the idea of equity, was abandoned and fell into oblivion. In France and Spain any one who dared to appeal to it in a cause was severely punished ; in Italy it is certain that the nobles considered it dishonourable to regulate their affairs by Roman law, and professed to live according to that of the Lombards ; while the plebeians, slower in throwing off ancient customs, continued to practise certain parts of the Roman law by force of habit. In fact the law of the period consisted rather of habits than of statutes : rigid formulae and solemn ceremonial once more acquired importance, and a distinction was made between pacta nuda, naked agreements, and pacta vestita, agreements clothed and reinforced by these formulae and ceremonies. An example of the respect in which formulae were held is afforded by the action of the Emperor Conrad III. On taking Weinsberg, a town which had supported his rival for the empire, he condemned it to extermination, making an exception only in favour of the women and all they could bring out with them. The women came out of the doomed city carrying on their backs their sons, husbands and fathers : and the Emperor, aaa THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO standing before the gate at the head of his army with swords drawn and lances in rest to satisfy their leader's terrible wrath, watched them and allowed them to pass safe and sound out of respect for the letter of his own decree. It was an illiterate period, a fact expressed by Vico in the statement that languages again became " mute " or hieroglyphic. The common tongues, Italian, French, Spanish and German, were not written down : only a few ecclesiastics wrote a barbarous Latin, and hence " cleric " and " scholar " became synonymous terms ; but among the very priests such ignorance prevailed that we find documents signed by bishops with the sign of the cross, as they were unable to write their own names. Owing to this paucity of learning an English law laid down that a man condemned to death should be reprieved if he could write, as a valuable craftsman ; and "man of letters " as well as " cleric " or " clerk " remained a name for a learned man. Hence the value and general employment of family arms to indicate the owners of a house, a tomb, land or livestock, and the frequency with which coats- of-arms are found on buildings of the time. With barbarism returned the predominance of verse over prose. The prose of the Fathers of the Latin Church and the same is true of those of the Greek is full of poetic rhythms, so as to resemble a chant. The first modern lyric poetry was religious ; and if there was not strictly a Christian religious poetry, this was because the subjects of our theology transcend all intelligence and imagination and crush the poetic faculty. Poetry and history were once more confounded ; the romantic poets, the heroic poets of the return to barbarism, believed their own stories to be true, and thus Boiardo and Ariosto took as subject for their poems Turpin, Bishop of Paris. And just as the French language, when owing to the famous Parisian school and the highly subtle scholastic theology THE RETURN OF BARBARISM 323 it passed at a stroke from spontaneity to reflection, pre- served pure diphthongs in great number while adopting abstract terms, so the story of Turpin survived in France like a Homeric poem. These authors of Latin poems confined themselves entirely to history, for instance, William of Apulia's De gestis Normannorum in Italia and Gunther's Carmen heroicum de rebus a Frederico Bar- bar ossa gestis. The first writers in the vernacular were in Italy poets no less than in Provence and France. A punctilious virtue like that of Achilles again appeared, the complete morality of the duellist ; hence arose the proud laws, the lofty duties and the vindictive satisfac- tions of the knight-errants sung by the romantic poets. Does not Cola diRienzo seem to be a real Homeric character in his swift outburst of emotion when, as we read in his life, while speaking of the unhappy state of Rome he excited both himself and his listeners to unrestrained tears ? Hyperbole was a common type of thought, as in children ; f or " I often remember," writes Vico, " when walking abroad that the gentle slopes which unfold themselves before my eyes appeared when I was a child to be steep and lofty mountains." Thus in the Middle Ages Roland and the other paladins were represented as gigantic in stature : and images of divine beings, the eternal Father, Christ, or the Virgin, painted or sculptured, were of colossal dimensions. But the human mind is like land which, after lying waste for long centuries, when first cultivated bears crops of wonderful quality, size and abundance. Thus at the close of barbarism in Italy after four savage and stormy centuries, arose Dante, the Homer of the second barbarism, just as somewhat later flourished the delicate verse of Petrarch and the gallant and graceful prose of Boccaccio ; all three incomparable in their way. And since barbarism is, as we have already indicated, truthful, frank, faithful, generous and magnanimous by nature, Dante puts on 224 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO the stage real persons and real actions of the dead ; and his poem is called a " comedy " in allusion to the ancient comedy which followed the same principle. It is a poem in which both the Iliad and the Odyssey find parallels ; the former in the Inferno, where Dante employs his choleric genius and all his vast imagination in describing the effects of implacable wrath and recalling numbers of merciless punishments, a worthy companion-picture to the horrid slaughters of Homer (whose descriptions of them inspire pity in us, but gave nothing but pleasure to his own audience) ; the latter, the Odyssey, which cele- brates the heroic endurance of Ulysses, is paralleled by the Purgatorio, a spectacle of severe punishments borne with immovable patience, and the Paradiso where infinite joy is experienced with an infinite tranquillity of mind. Another similarity between Dante and Homer lies in the physiognomy of the former's language, which is so varied that some suppose him to have collected it like Homer from all the dialects of his nation ; an opinion of sixteenth- century scholars which will not stand criticism, for it is certain that when Dante used them these expressions must have been current at Florence, and that a lifetime would have been insufficient to collect them from this side and from that when there were no writers in the various dialects. But the most important resemblance of Dante to Homer is in poetic sublimity. Dante is a divine poet who to the delicate imaginations of to-day seems rough and uncivilised, and often shocks by unwonted harmonies an ear that has become morbidly sensitive through effeminate music. But he is received very differently by men of severe tastes who refuse to be satisfied with flowers, ornaments and graces. Like Homer too he is great not in esoteric wisdom but in the vigour of his imagination. Dante was undoubtedly a very learned theologian, but that was his weakness rather than his strength. If he had known neither Scholasticism nor THE RETURN OF BARBARISM 223 Latin, he would have been a still greater poet, and perhaps the Tuscan language would have had what Latin never had, a poet who could hi everything bear comparison with Homer. The man who wrote this page of criticism on Dante and vindicated him once more after centuries of anti- Dantesque taste (or mere Dantesque grammar or Dantesque scholasticism) and vindicated him in the very height of the prosperity of the Arcadianism so hostile to him, deserved to have made the acquaintance of William Shakespear's genius, which he was perhaps the only man alive capable of understanding. But in Italy, as in most countries outside England, nothing was known of Shake- spear at this time, and Vico has only the vague and belated remark about him that the English, untouched by the prevailing delicacy of the century, took no pleasure in tragedies which had not an element of atrocity in them, just as the earliest taste of Greek drama was for the abominable feast of Thyestes and Medea's impious slaughter of her brother and children. The tendency towards Teutonic poetry and literature remained in Vico as we know an aspiration only ; he was unable to get a clear view of it however closely he tried to examine it ; and when he does mention it upon the strength of second- hand information, it is only to say that in the German nation, especially in the purely agricultural province of Silesia, " poets arose naturally " ; in his search for an unsophisticated popular poetry he had in fact stumbled without realising his mistake upon the Silesian school of Hoffmanswaldau and Lohenstein, the German imitators of the Neapolitan Marino. But the only value of the anecdote is to illustrate anew the tricks played upon Vico by his lively fancy. How the world emerged from the second barbarism and the feudal constitution, Vico does not say. He does not seem to have fixed his attention upon the communal Q 226 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO movement which presents so many analogies with the struggles of the Roman plebs and the formation of ancient democracy. He makes game, here again, of those who traced the genesis of modern monarchies such as the French to a simple law like that of Tribonian by which, he explains ironically, the paladins of France deprived themselves of their power and conferred it upon the kings of the Capetian dynasty. He also observes that the baronial power, being dispersed and dissipated by reason of civil wars in which they were obliged to depend upon the people, was the more easily gathered up by sovereign monarchs ; and that thus the " obsequium " of vassals to their baron passed into the " obsequium principis." But he gives quite a special importance to the rediscovery of Roman law (that " natural law of the European nations " as Grotius had called it) by the studies undertaken in the Italian universities. Men thus learnt anew the principles of natural equity ; the nobles and plebeians became equal in the eyes of civil law as they are already in human nature, the secrets of the laws passed out of the hands of the feudatories, whose power consequently diminished by degrees, and the humane government of free republics and perfect monarchies came into being. The reflux of heroic society had now undergone a contrary reflux ; it was no longer possible, under the conditions of modern civilisation, to recall it to life, just as it was impossible for the attempts of the Pythagoreans and Dion of Syracuse to restore the ancient aristocracies. The plebeians, once recognised as naturally equals of the nobles, no longer submitted to remaining inferior to them in civil life. And the few aristocratic republics which here and there survived in Europe were compelled to take infinite pains and all manner of wise measures in order to keep quiet and contented the multitudes whom they governed. CHAPTER XIX VICO AND THE TENDENCIES OF CONTEMPORARY CULTURE HAVING reached, in his review of the course of history, his own time, a time of civilisation spread over all nations, Vico gives a rapid description of the contemporary world and then says no more : perhaps unsatisfied, at any rate uncertain or cautious. As he was not led to embark upon the New Science by the direct call of political problems, at least in the ordinary meaning of the phrase, he never descends from the contemplations of the New Science to the practical life, even in the form which it most usually takes with a philosopher, a work or short treatise criticising laws and institutions or suggesting improvements. Even when he does dimly conceive the idea of a " practical aspect " of his science, he never supposes that so far as he is concerned it could ever exist except " within the academies." Practical philosophy " within the academies," that is to say, within the sphere of culture, is however still practical and political ; and it is assuredly not the least important branch of politics. And a historian or philo- sopher can never entirely avoid it, though he can emphasise it more or less and develop it more or less fully. Vico does emphasise and develop it freely. The first expression of his scientific life was precisely an examina- tion of modern methods of study and education as com- 227 228 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO pared with those of the ancients : an examination which after various attempts and uncertainties in his first discoveries, took form in his University inaugural lecture of 1708, De nostri temporis studiorum -ratione. In the following years, engaged as he was upon the New Science, he gave no further public demonstration of his discontent with the prevailing tendency of studies ; but he expressed his feelings on the subject all the more often and all the more strongly in private letters, and did not wish to pass over the question in his autobiography. We need not then infer his polemical attitude from hints and chance phrases of his chief work ; since he has himself more than once converted these hints into explicit statements and these chance phrases into leading propositions. This polemic occupies two closely-related spheres corresponding to the double aspect of the New Science as a Philosophy of Mind and a Generalising Science. Under the first aspect Vico had vindicated the claims of imagina- tion, the imaginative universal, probability, certitude, experience and authority, and therefore also of poetry, religion, history, observation of nature, scholarship and tradition. Under the second, he had traced a scheme of the natural development of the mind both in the history of mankind and in that of the individual, which he brings into constant relation with the phases of history. Hence his examination was bound to extend on the one hand to the mental condition of his own tune and on the other to the way in which the education of children and young people was conceived and undertaken. In both spheres Vico saw the same defects ; he was met by the same arid intellectualism which had made impossible the process of thought and had mutilated and falsified the truth of human history. On emerging from grammar-schools, boys were immedi- ately plunged into logic. The logic studied might be, according to the teacher's taste, either the scholastic or CONTEMPORARY CULTURE 229 more often that composed by Arnauld and called the Port-Royal Logic, itself in substance Aristotelian and Scholastic, but full of dry judgments concerning abstruse subjects in advanced sciences and far removed from common knowledge ; overloaded in fact with examples drawn from such sciences. Such a discipline was meant to make boys critical and to eradicate from their minds not only false, but even probable and plausible opinions. As a matter of fact it eradicated nothing, since their minds were still empty or scantily furnished, and unable to make any use of criticism for lack of matter to criticise. They were to be taught to judge before being taught to apprehend, an order false to the natural course of ideas, which are first apprehended, then judged, and finally reasoned. The result was that minds educated in this way became arid and unfruitful in development, and believed themselves capable of judging everything, while able to create nothing. They remained all their lives intensely acute in formal thinking, but incapable of any great labour ; critical, in fact, but sterile. This caused not only unsoundness and arrogance of judgment but incapacity in practical life, dealings with men, and civil eloquence, which is founded less upon criticism than upon plausibility, and attains its end by making opportune remarks, understanding the psychology of one's inter- locutor and acting in a manner adapted to it. Vico him- self had suffered from the logico-critical method of educa- tion. One of his first teachers, the Jesuit Del Balzo, had put into his hands the works of the epitomist Paulus Venetus : and his mind, being too weak as yet to cope with this kind of Chrysippean logic, almost broke down under the strain ; so that having given up his studies in despair it was eighteen months before he resumed them. He preserved a happier memory of his youthful essays in poetry in the wildest style of the Neapolitan school of Marino : a form of diversion, he says, almost necessary to the mind 930 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO of the young when metaphysic has rendered it too subtle and too rigid in precisely those years when the ardour of youth ought to lead the mind into errors, so as to save it from becoming chilly and dry. This age, the " barbarism of intellect," vigorous in imagination and also, through the close connexion that exists between the two, in memory, requires to be nourished and exercised by the reading of poetry, history and rhetoric as well as by the study of languages. The art which it ought to learn is not criticism but " topic," the true art of the " ingenium " or faculty of invention. By means of this art children acquire materials which enable them to form sound judgments in later life ; for sound judgment depends upon a complete knowledge of its subject-matter, and " topic " is the art of discovering the whole content of any given thing. In this way young people simply by following the course of nature become at once philosophers and good speakers. Some antidote is doubtless necessary to the exuberance of the imagination. But this must be sought in linear geometry rather than in logic : for geometry is to some extent pictorial in character, while it strengthens the memory by the great number of its elements, ennobles the imagination by the delicacy of its figures and stimulates the inventive faculty by forcing it to review all these figures in order to choose those suitable to the demonstra- tion of the quantity required. But the whole value of geometry also was annulled by the method then in favour with the schools, the algebraic method, which like the scholastic logic numbs all the vigour of youthful faculties, obscures the imagination, enfeebles the memory, and renders the inventive power and the understanding slug- gish ; thus damaging the liberal arts in four distinct ways, in the knowledge of languages and history, in invention and in prudence. More particularly algebra is fatal to the inventive faculty, because in using the algebraic method one is conscious only of the immediate field of vision ; CONTEMPORARY CULTURE 231 it weakens the memory because once the second sign is found the first need no longer be remembered ; it blinds the imagination, because that faculty is not used at all ; it destroys the understanding, because it lays claim to the power of divination. Young men who have devoted their time to it on proceeding to deal with the affairs of civil life find themselves, to their great grief and remorse, unfitted for such a life. Hence, to make it useful in some degree and to prevent these ill effects, it should be studied for a short tune only at the close of the mathematical course, and employed only as a means of abbreviation. The habit of reasoning is formed much better by meta- physical analysis, which in all questions begins by taking truth in the infinity of being, and then descends by degrees through the genera of the substance, eliminating in every species that which the thing is not, till it arrives at the ultimate differentia constituting the essence of the thing we wish to know. Education as a whole was suffering from an excess of mathematics and a lack of concreteness. As if boys, on emerging from academic life, were to enter a human world composed of lines, numbers and algebraic symbols, their heads were crammed with the magnificent phrases "demonstration," "demonstrative truth," and "evidence," and the rule of probability was condemned ; though this rule is the only guide of statesmen in their counsels, generals in their campaigns, orators in their treatment of a cause, judges in giving a decision, physicians hi treating bodily diseases, and moralistic theologians in treating those of the conscience ; the rule which the world accepts, and upon which it rests in all disputes and controversies, in all measures, and in all elections ; which are universally determined by unanimity or the majority of votes. Such an education bred up an empty and in- flated generation, pedantry without wisdom and argument without truth. 232 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO The educators themselves, that is to say, the general atmosphere of culture, resembled this scheme of educa- tion. Poetry was dead. The analytic methods had " numbed " (to repeat once more a word which Vico uses with great frequency and force) " all the generosity of the better poetry." And indeed Europe was never so entirely barren of all poetic growth as it was in the first half of the eighteenth century. Italy was reduced to the drama of Metastasio ; France had produced no one to succeed Corneille and Moliere ; in Spain the national drama, that great outburst of the national spirit, was dead, and a rationalism imitating that of France was taking its place ; England seemed to have entirely for- gotten that she once gave birth to Shakespear, and even Germany was wasting her time over neo-classical imita- tions. Not only did nobody create new poetry, but nobody wanted it. The philosophers, following Descartes and Malebranche, had declared a war of extermination against all the faculties of the mind which depend upon sense, and especially against the imagination, which they hated as the source of every error. They condemned the poets on the false pretext that they told " fables," as if the fables they told were not those eternal properties of the human mind which to the political philosophers, economists and moralists are the subject-matter of reason- ing, and to the poets that of representation. The Cartesians also used their authority to belittle the study of languages. Did not Descartes say that the knowledge of Latin was no greater knowledge than was possessed by Cicero's servant-girl ? Serious scholarship in Latin and Greek had come to an end with the writers of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries ; the study of oriental languages was confined to the Protestants ; and Holland was the only country in which law was still a subject of research. The famous library of Valletta at Naples, rich in the finest editions of Greek and Latin CONTEMPORARY CULTURE 233 works, was generously bought by the fathers of the Oratory, but for less than half its original value owing to the depreci- ation of books. In France the library of Cardinal Dubois found no purchaser and was sold in small lots. Princes no longer loved good Latin, and none of them thought of preserving to posterity by the pen of pure Latin scholar- ship even an event so weighty as the War of the Spanish Succession, comparable only to the second Punic war. New methods were in great favour : but none of these could point to new facts discovered by their help. New formulae, old facts ; and instead of facts, a futile hope of attaining universal knowledge in the shortest time and with the smallest effort. Civil and political learning was neglected for physical science, and physical science for mathematical ; experience was almost ignored ; the in- ventive thought of the previous century all but entirely exhausted. Scepticism, the result of the Cartesian method, invaded the field of knowledge. The whole of Europe was during this period still under the dominion of the French language, a language which differs from the Italian in its hostility to poetry and eloquence ; rich, says Vico, in terms of substance, and consequently, since substance is a brutal and immobile thing and does not admit of comparisons, incapable of giving colour, amplitude or weight to its statements ; it resists inversion and is barren of metaphor. The French have no periods but only members of periods : their prosody has no verse better than the so-called Alexandrine, a system of couplets more thin and lifeless than the elegiac : and their words admit of no accent except those on the last two syllables. French is a language incapable of the sublime, but well adapted to the petty : owing to its abund- ance of terms of substance or abstract terms it is adapted also to the didactic style, and instead of eloquence it offers esprit. It was not unfitting that criticism and analysis originated in France and made use of the French tongue. 234 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO The only possession of value which grew up day by day in all this poverty was the abstracts, the encyclopaedias, the dictionaries of science which bore the names of such men as Bayle, Hoffmann and Moreri : the idlest and most casual method of learning that could possibly be devised. The genius of the age was more drawn towards expounding second-hand knowledge in an abbreviated form than towards attempting to enlarge its bounds. That seemed impossible : so men went on compiling dictionaries of mathematics. Every one felt a thirst for cheap science. To be thought good, a book must be clear and simple, capable of being discussed with ladies as a pastime ; if it demanded wide and copious erudition of the reader, and forced upon him the unpleasant exercise of thought and synthesis, it was condemned as unin- telligible. These dictionaries and abstracts recalled to Vice's mind the similar products of the Greek decadence, the anthologies, lexicons and encyclopaedias of Suidas, Stobaeus and Photius. The whole culture of his time seemed to him to be repeating the downfall of Greek science, ex- hausting itself in a metaphysic either useless or harmful to civilisation and a mathematics engaged in investigating quantities intangible by rule and compass, and incapable of application. Like others among the best minds of his country he was persuaded that the republic of letters was approaching dissolution, if the divine providence failed by one of its innumerable secret paths to infuse new vigour into it. Where was now the wise man, the real " sapiens " whom Vico had found in history, first in the barbaric figure of the theologian-poet, then in the civilised and rational figure of Greek philosopher and Roman jurist, the man whom for to-day he hoped to find in the master of eloquence like himself, called to give unity, life and power to all knowledge ? Wisdom is indeed not this or that science, nor yet the sum total of CONTEMPORAR Y CUL TURE 235 science ; it is the faculty which rules over all studies and by which all the sciences and arts that go to make humanity are acquired. And since man is both thought and spirit, intellect and will, it must satisfy both these sides of man, the second as a result of the first : it must teach the knowledge of divine things, to bring to perfection things human. The wise man is man in his totality and entirety, the whole man. The ideal is no doubt lofty, and the criticism upon the educational method and tendencies of thought current in his age are, no doubt, perfectly just. And yet among all these admirable truths, far in advance of the eighteenth century as they are, we feel in Vico the educationalist and critic something of the reactionary. We feel that, in his exclusive care for the fate of the highest and most austere science and his exclusive attention to the most complete form of human life, he failed to grasp the revolutionary importance of this scepticism or rationalism, this rebellion against the past, the necessary weapon of a warfare against kings, nobles and priests ; of these abstracts and dictionaries which were to develop into the Encyclopaedia; of this popular science, the forerunner of journalism, and these booklets for the use of ladies in fashionable con- versation which were the nourishment of the eighteenth- century salons and prepared men's minds for the radicalism of the Jacobins. We feel in him here as in his philosophical system, the Catholic chained to the philo- sopher, the Christian pessimist weighing down the dialectic of immanence. Unable to realise his adversaries' progress, he does not comprehend their real nature as lower than himself, but yet constituting steps leading up to himself, steps which he ought to have traversed in order to attain a truer understanding and grasp of himself. His polemical attitude towards the culture of his time completes and confirms the analysis already given of the merits and defects of his philosophy. CHAPTER XX CONCLUSION : VICO AND THE LATER DEVELOPMENTS OF PHILOSOPHICAL AND HISTORICAL THOUGHT THE reader need not expect that having brought our exposition to a close we shall add a verdict upon Vice's work, or what is known as an " appreciation " of it. If the verdict has not already emerged as a result of the exposition itself, or as identical with it, if description and criticism have been not one and same, the fault lies either with ourselves or with the reader's lack of attention ; and in either case it cannot now be repaired by ornamental additions or redundant repetitions. We confess also that we feel no sympathy with the chapters commonly placed at the conclusion of critical works upon philosophers and narrating the later history of their ideas. For if these " ideas " are understood in an extrinsic sense, in their influence upon society and culture, such a review may indeed have a value of its own, 1 but is foreign to the history of philosophy properly so called : if on the other hand they are considered as real and living philosophical ideas, their later history amounts to neither more nor less than the history of subsequent philosophy, and there is no reason for append- ing it to a study of one philosopher rather than another. Any other method implies the uncritical theory that ideas are something solid and crystallised, like precious stones 1 See Appendix II. 236 CONCLUSION 237 handed on from one generation to another, whose shape and glitter can always be recognised unaltered in the new diadems they compose and the new brows they adorn. But in reality ideas are nothing but the unremitting thought of man, and transmission for them is nothing less than transformation. It is nevertheless a fact that no one has written on Vico without feeling a need of casting his eyes over later years and noting the resemblances and analogies between the Neapolitan philosopher's doctrines and those of fifty or a hundred years after. And further, we ourselves, in spite of the antipathy we admittedly feel, and the methodi- cal criteria we professedly employ, yet recognise now the same necessity. Why is this ? Because Vico in his own day passed for an eccentric and lived as a recluse ; because the later development of thought was almost entirely untouched by his direct influence ; because even to-day, though well enough known in certain restricted circles, he has not taken the place he deserves in the general history of thought. How then can we show the manner in which his doctrines, true or false, respond to the deepest needs of the mind, more simply than by re- cording the similarity of the ideas and attempts which later appeared in such profusion and intensity as to stamp their individuality upon the philosophical and historical labours of a whole century ? And even if after our intrinsic examination of his thought this comparison with the facts of later history seems unnecessary, it will at least be granted that if our discourse like any other must have its rhetorical conclusion, no peroration occurs more naturally than one consisting in a rapid review of subsequent philosophy and philology and emphasising their points of contact with the thought of Vico. We might even adopt the method by which he compares the second barbarism with the first, and present the later history of thought as a " reflux " of Vico's ideas. In the 938 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO first place his criticism of Descartes' immediate knowledge recurs, together with his conversion of the true with the created, in the speculative movement beginning with Kant and Hegel and culminating in the doctrine of the identity of truth and reality, thought and existence. His unity of philosophy and philology recurs in the vindica- tion of history against the scepticism and intellectualism of the eighteenth century due to Cartesianism ; in the a priori synthesis of Kant which reconciles the real and the ideal, experience and the categories ; and in the historical philosophy of Hegel, the greatest exponent of nineteenth-century historical tendencies. This unity of philosophy and philology, a unity with Vico sometimes confused and impure in method, recurred in its faulty aspects also in the Hegelian school ; so that this mental tendency might with justice be entitled " Vicianism." The limitation which Vico tried to impose on the value of mathe- matics and exact science recurred, as did his criticism of the mathematical and naturalistic conception of philosophy, in Jacobi's critique of Spinozistic determinism and Hegel's of the abstract intellect ; and in the case of mathematics in particular Dugald Stewart and others recognised that its validity lay not in the postulates but in the definitions, and the " fictions " of which Vico speaks reappear in the modern terminology of the philosophy of these sciences. His poetical logic or science of the imagination passes into Aesthetic, so ardently studied by the philosophers, literary men and artists of Germany in the eighteenth century, brought by Kant into great prominence by his criticism of the Leibnitian doctrine of intuition as con- fused conception, and further advanced by Schelling and Hegel, who place art among the pure forms of the mind and so approach the position of Vico. Romanticism too, especially in Germany but also more or less in other countries, was Vician, emphasising as it did the original function of the imagination. His doctrines of language CONCLUSION 239 recurred when Herder and Humboldt treated it not in- tellectualistically as an artificial system of symbols, but as a free and poetic creation of the mind. The theory of religion and mythology abandoned the hypotheses of allegory and deception, and with David Hume recog- nised that religion is a natural fact, corresponding to the beginnings of human life in its passionate and imaginative state ; with Heyne, that mythology is " symbolic speech," a product not of arbitrary invention but of necessity and poverty, of the " lack of words," which finds expression " in comparisons with things already known " (per rerum iam turn notarum similitudines] ; and with Ottfried Muller, that it is impossible to understand mythology without entering into the very heart of the human soul, where we maysee its necessity and spontaneity. Religion was regarded no longer as something extraneous or hostile to philosophy, as a piece of stupidity or of deception practised by the unscrupulous upon the simple, but according to Vice's own doctrine as a rudimentary philosophy ; so that the whole content of reasoned meta- physic was already to a certain extent implicit in poetical or religious metaphysic. Similarly, poetry and history were no longer kept distinct or set face to face to destroy each other ; and as one of the great inspirers of the new German literature, Hamann (who in many ways resembles Vico in tendency, though unequal to him in mental power), had already foreseen when he uttered the warning, " if our poetry is worthless, our history will become leaner than Pharaoh's kine," a breath of poetry revived the historical study of the nineteenth century ; once colour- less, it became picturesque : once frigid, it regained warmth and life. The criticism of Hobbes' and Locke's utilitarianism, and the affirmation of the moral conscious- ness as a spontaneous sense of shame and a judgment entirely free from reflection reappeared in full panoply with the Critique of the Practical Reason ; and that of 240 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO their social atomism and consequent contractualism in Hegel's Philosophy of Right. The liberty of conscience and religious indifferentism professed and inculcated by the publicists of the seventeenth century were negated as a philosophical doctrine ; and a nation without God seemed to Hegel, as it did to Vico, a phenomenon not to be found in history and existing only in the gossip of travellers in unknown or little-known lands. Carrying on the work of the Reformation, which Vico could neither grasp nor truly appreciate, the idealistic philosophy of Germany aimed not at exterminating religion, but at refining it, and at giving philosophy itself the spiritual value of religion. The certitude, the hard certitude which Vico distinguished from truth in the sphere of law, formed the subject of thought from Thomasius to Kant and Fichte and so on to the most recent writers, who have sought even if they have never found the dis- tinctive criterion of the two forms ; all or nearly all show a vivid consciousness of what is called " constraint" or " compulsion," a fact which had been almost forgotten in the old superficial and rhetorical moral theory. The historical school of law, in its reaction against the abstract revolutionary and reformatory tendencies of the eighteenth century, was bound to recall Vico's polemic against the Platonic or Grotian theory of an ideal republic or a natural law above and outside history and serving as a standard for history, and to recognise with Vico that law is correla- tive to the whole social life of a people at a given moment of its history and capable of being judged only in relation to it ; a living and plastic reality, in a continual process of change like that of language. Finally, Vico's provi- dence, the rationality and objectivity of history, which obeys a logic different from that attributed to it by the fancies and illusions of the individual, acquires a more prosaic name, but without changing its nature, in the " cunning of the reason " formulated by Hegel : it appeared CONCLUSION 241 again, ingeniously but perversely treated, in Schopen- hauer's " cunning of the species," and again, treated with little ingenuity on a purely psychological method, in Wundt's so-called law of the " heterogenesis of ends." Almost all the leading doctrines of nineteenth-century idealism, we have seen, may be regarded as refluxes of Vician doctrines. Almost all ; for there is one of which we find in Vico not the premonition but the necessity, not a temporary filling but a gap to be filled. Here the nineteenth century is no longer a reflux of, but an advance upon Vico ; and discordant voices of warning or reproach rise up against him. His distinction of the two worlds of mind and nature, to both of which the criterion of his theory of knowledge, the conversion of the truth with the thing created, was applicable, but applicable to the former by man himself because that world is a world created by man, and therefore knowable by him, to the second by God the Creator, so that this world is un- knowable by man ; this distinction was not accepted by the new philosophy, which, more Vician than Vico, made the demigod Man into a God, lifted human thought to the level of universal mind or the idea, spiritualised or idealised nature, and tried to understand it specula- tivelyin the " Philosophy of Nature " as itself a product of mind. As soon as the last remnant of transcendence was in this way destroyed, the concept of progress over- looked by Vico and grasped and affirmed to some extent by the Cartesians and their eighteenth-century followers in their superficial and rationalistic manner shone out in its full splendour. But if in this point Vico cannot stand the comparison with later philosophy, the failure is amply atoned by the full agreement between his historical discoveries and the criticism and research of the nineteenth century. Above all, he agrees with his successors in his rules of method, his scepticism as regards the narrative of ancient historians, R 242 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO his recognition of the superiority of documents and monu- ments over narrative, his investigation of language as a store-house of primitive beliefs and customs, his social interpretation of mythology, his emphasis on spontaneous development rather than external communication of civilisation, his care not to interpret primitive psychology in the light of modern psychology ; and so on. In his actual solutions of historical problems he also agrees with later historians. These restated the archaic and barbaric character of primitive Greek and Roman civilisation, and the aristocratic and feudal tendency of its political con- stitution : they took up the view of ancient legal cere- monial as a dramatic poem containing allusions to the actions of fighting : the transformation of the Roman heroes into heroes of democracy came to an end with the Jacobins in France and their imitators in Italy and else- where ; Homer was considered great in proportion to his ruggedness; the history of Rome was reconstructed chiefly on the basis of Roman law, and the names of the seven kings appeared as symbols of institutions and the traditional origin of Rome as a late invention derived from Greece or from Greek models : the substance of this history was seen to consist in the economic and juridical struggle between patriciate and plebs, and the plebs was derived from the famuli or clients : the struggle of the classes, which Vico was the first to illuminate clearly, was recog- nised as a criterion of wide application to the history of all time and serving as an explanation of the most sweeping social revolutions : the Middle Ages, especially during the Restoration which followed the Napoleonic period, exercised a powerful appeal to sentiment and influence on thought, being admired and regretted as the antithesis of the rationalistic bourgeois society, and understood in consequence as the religious, aristocratic and poetical period discovered by Vico, the youth of modern Europe. Thus Italy rediscovered the greatness of her own Dante, CONCLUSION 243 and the criticism of that poet which Vico had initiated was carried to completion by De Sanctis. In the same way, Niebuhr and Mommsen brought to maturity his view of Roman history ; Wolf, his theory of Homer ; Heyne, Miiller and Bachhofen, his interpretation of mythology ; Grimm and other philologists his projected reconstruction of ancient life by means of etymology ; Savignyand the historical school, his study of the spontane- ous development of law, and his preference for custom rather than statute and code : Thierry and Fustel de Coulanges in France, Troya in Italy and a host of scholars in Germany his conception of the Middle Ages and of feudalism : Marx and Sorel his idea of the struggle of classes and the rejuvenation of society by a return to a primitive state of mind and a new barbarism : and lastly the superman of Nietzsche recalls in some degree Vico's hero. These are merely a few names picked without care and almost at random ; for to mention all, and each in his right place, would mean writing the whole history of the latest phase of European thought, a history which is not yet finished, though it has undergone, under the name of " positivism," a parenthetical recurrence of the abstract and materialistic thought of the eighteenth century, a parenthesis which now however seems to be at an end. These innumerable reappearances of the work of an individual in the work of several generations, this parallel- ism between a man and a century, justify a fanciful phrase with which we might draw from the later develop- ments in order to describe Vico ; namely that he is neither more nor less than the nineteenth century in germ. The description may serve to summarise our reconstruction and exposition of his doctrines, and to contribute towards a right understanding of his place in the history of modern philosophy. He may rightly be placed side by side with Leibniz, with whom he has so often been compared ; 244 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO but not, as has been believed, because of any resemblance (the comparisons made in this belief have been shown to be false or superficial) but precisely because he is unlike him and in fact his very opposite. Leibniz is Cartesianism raised to its highest power ; an intellectualist, in spite of the petites perceptions and the confused knowledge ; a mechanicist, in spite of his dynamism, which perhaps exists in his fancy rather than in his actual thought ; hostile to history, in spite of his immense historical erudition ; blind to any knowledge of the true nature of language, though deeply interested in language all his life ; devoid of dialectic, in spite of his attempt to explain the evil in the universe. In relation to later idealism, the Leibnitian philosophy stands as the most complete ex- pression of the old metaphysic which had to be tran- scended : that of Vico is the sketch of the new metaphysic, only needing further development and determination. The one spoke to his own century, and his century crowded round him and echoed his words far and wide. The other spoke to a century yet to come ; and the place in which he cried was a wilderness that gave no answer. But the crowd and the wilderness add nothing to and take nothing from the intrinsic character of a thought. APPENDICES APPENDIX I ON THE LIFE AND CHARACTER OF G. B. VICO l THE transformation, half rhetorical, half mythical, which the heat of the national reawakening effected in poets, philo- sophers, and almost every character of any importance in Italian history, representing them as patriots, liberals, and in open rebellion or secret revolt against the throne and the altar, tried for a time to touch with its magic wand and to work its will upon Giambattista Vico. It was said, among other things, that Vico, conscious of the severe blow dealt by his thought to the traditional beliefs of religion, and warned by his friends, took pains to plunge the New Science into such obscurity that only the finest intellects could perceive its tendencies. But though this legend, energetically spread as it was by the patriots and republicans of 1799, was believed here and there, it could not long stand out against criticism or even against common sense ; and Cataldo lannelli was right to pass over it with a few words of contemptuous irony. 2 It is certain from an objective point of view that Vico's doctrines implicitly contained a criticism of Christian tran- 1 Since the preceding portions of this work are strictly confined to the analysis of Vico's philosophy and give no information as to his life and personal character, the reader will not be displeased to find in this appendix a lecture delivered by myself upon the latter subject before the Neapolitan Societd di storia patria on April 14, 1909, and later written down and published in the Florence Voce (ist year, No. 43, October 7, 1909). I add for convenience of memory that Vico was born at Naples on June 23, 1668 (not 1670 as he says in his auto- biography), and died on January 23 (not 20 as all his biographers say), 1744 : cf. the new edition of the Autobiografia, carteggio e poesie varie (Bari, Laterza, 1911), pp. 101, 123, 124. 2 See for the whole question Croce, Bibliografia vichiana, pp. 91-5. 247 248 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VI CO scendence and theology as well as of the history of Christianity. From the subjective point of view it may be that Vico during his youth (of which we know very little) was the victim of religious doubts. Such doubts may have been suggested to him not only by his reading, but by the society of young men of his own age, among whom " libertines," or as contemporary literature still called them " epicureans " or " atheists," were not uncommon. 1 In a letter of 1720 to Father Giacchi, he says that at Naples the " weaknesses and errors dating from his early youth " are remembered against him, and that these, fixed in the memory, became as often happens " eternal criteria for the judgment of everything beautiful and complete which he subsequently succeeded in doing." z What can these errors and weaknesses have been ? Again when the De universi iuris uno principle et fine uno appeared, or rather the " Synopsis " which announced its programme, " the first voices " which Vico heard raised against him " were tinged with an assumed piety." He found protection and consolation in the face of such criticism in religion itself, that is to say in the approval of Giacchi, " the leading light of the strictest and most holy order of religious." 3 But just as we possess no detailed information as to the criticisms levelled against him on this head, so we have no certain knowledge even of the most general kind as to the religious doubts that may have troubled him. All Vico's writings show the Catholic religion established in his heart, grave, solid and immovable as a pillar of adamant ; so solid and so strong that it remained absolutely untouched by the criticism of mythology inaugurated by himself. Nor was Vico an irreproachable Catholic in external demonstration only. He not only submitted every word he ever printed to the double censorship, public and private, of ecclesiastical 1 In the Giornali of Confuorto (MSS. in the library of the Neapolitan Historical Soc. xx. c. 22, vol. iii. f. in) under August 1692, we find " certain civil persons were imprisoned in the prisons of St. Dominic by the tribunal of the Holy Office ; among them the doctor Giacinto de Cristofaro, son of the doctor Bernardo ; many others escaped, members of the Epicurean or Atheist sect, who believe the soul to perish with the body." This De Cristofaro is the famous Neapolitan mathematician and jurisconsult, for whom see F. Amodeo, Vita mate- matica napoletana, part iii. (Naples, Giannini, 1905), pp. 31-44 ; he was Vico's friend. For other notices of the " Epicureans " at Naples at this time see Carducci, Opere, vol. ii. pp. 235-6. 2 Letter of October 12, 1720. s Ibid. APPENDIX I 249 friends, and led his life as a philosopher and writer among priestly vestments and monastic cowls no less than among legal gowns ; he was even scrupulous enough to desist from his commentary on Grotius, thinking it unseemly that a Catholic should annotate a Protestant writer ; 1 and so delicate was his sense of Catholic honour that he refused to admit polemic upon matters of religious feeling. "As to this diffi- culty," he says to his critics of the Giornale dei letter ati, " like that which you propound to me concerning the immortality of the soul, where it appears that you have in hand seven distinct arguments, if they had not been prepared for me by you, I should judge that they go deeper and penetrate to a region which is not only protected and secured by my life and conduct, but which to defend is to outrage. But let us return to our subject." 2 His Catholicism was untainted by the superstition so general and so deeply rooted at the time, especially at Naples, where St. Januarius intervened as an actor and director in every event of public and private life. It was the Catholicism of a lofty soul and mind, not the faith of a charcoal-burner. But Vico never assumed the part of censor of superstitions. He was content with not speaking of them, as one keeps silence concerning the failings of persons or institutions which command one's respect. n Vico's attitude towards social and political life resembles in more than one respect his attitude towards religion. There is in him no trace of the missionary, the propagandist, the agitator or the conspirator as there was in some of the Renais- sance philosophers, notably Giordano Bruno and Campanella, whom although perhaps because a Neapolitan, Vico never mentions. Certainly, his age and his country were not the time or place for heroes ; there was none of that rapid social change and revolution from which heroes spring. Political parties however were active in favour of Austria and France, and men were arising who devoted their labours and their lives to one or other of these parties, or were persecuted and fled into exile : and above all this was the period in which 1 Autobiografia, in Opere, ed. Ferrari, and ed. iv. p. 367. * The " subject " is therefore not the religious objections, which he regarded as a personal insult (Riposta al Giornale dei letterati, in Opp. ii. p. 1 60). 250 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO culminated the struggle between Church and State, between Naples and Rome, in the person of Pietro Giannone, a man of whom Vico never speaks, just as he never mentions and in fact seems to ignore the entire movement. Political life rolled past over his head, like the sky and its stars, and he never wasted his strength in a vain attempt to reach it. Political and social controversy, like religious, was outside the sphere of his activity. He was indeed a non-political person. We cannot describe it as a fault or a weakness, for every one has his limitations ; one struggle excludes another, and one labour makes others impossible. Not that he avoided all contact with political life and its representatives. Only too often he was compelled to pay his respects to both, in the form of histories, speeches, verses and epigrams in Latin and Italian ; and these alone would be sufficient material for the reconstruction of Neapolitan history in all its vicissitudes from the end of the seventeenth century to the middle of the eighteenth : the Spanish viceregency, the conspiracy and revolution attempted by the partisans of Austria, the reaction and re-establishment of the Spanish viceregency, the Austrian conquest, the Austrian viceregency, the Spanish reconquest and the reign of Charles Bourbon. But Vico, " very pliant because of his necessity " 1 and as professor of eloquence in the royal university, was compelled to supply the literary compositions required by the solemnities of the day, just as the draper supplied hangings and the plasterer volutes and arabesques. And what hangings and arabesques he produced ! The Spanish style of the seventeenth century was still predominant in literature ; and this fact is alone almost enough to explain the extravagance and ornate- ness, as it seems to us, of Vice's flood of panegyrics. The indifference and innocence of his own attitude may be illus- trated by the passage in his autobiography where after men- tioning the Panegyricus Philippo V inscriptus composed by himself to the order of the Spanish viceroy, the Duke of Ascalona, he goes on as if it was a mere nothing, with no connexion but a simple " soon after " : " soon after, this kingdom having passed under the rule of Austria, the lord Count Wirrigo of Daun, at that time governor of the imperial armies in this country, ordered me" to compose inscriptions for the expiatory monuments to Guiseppe Capece and Carlo di Sangro, 2 the two rebels against Philip V. executed by the 1 Opp. vi. p. 20. 2 Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 394. APPENDIX I 251 previous government some years before in the suppression of the conspiracy of Macchia described by Vico from the Bourbon point of view in his De Parthenopea coniuratione. But this implies no baseness of character on Vico's part. It must be said that in these writings of his, orator and panegyrist though he is, he can never be called a flatterer. The flatterer, the man without a conscience, reviles and calumniates the enemies of the man he is praising, or even strikes the conquered : and this is servility. But Vico, who though he knew who the Italian or Neapolitan was that sent to the Ada Lipsiensia the note injurious to himself, and might easily have ruined him, since the note was anti-Catholic in tendency, generously refused to reveal his name, 1 gave no doubt his services as professor of eloquence but refrained from trafficking in the interests of the patrons whom he praised. Of the Life of Antonio Car of a which he composed for a com- mission and married one of his daughters on the proceeds, he says that the work was " tempered by honour towards the subject, reverence towards princes and the just claims of truth." 2 And to return to the case of Capece and Sangro mentioned above, when he spoke in the De Parthenopea coniuratione of the death of these two enemies to the triumphant party, he shows here too in various details the nobility of his spirit : of Capece, who refused to surrender to the Spanish soldiers, he writes " exposing his breast to death, and demand- ing death with his warlike arms, he fell unrepentant, a most valiant manner of death, were it only honoured in its cause " (ostentans pectus neci eamque infensis armis efflagitans, inexo- ratus occubuit, fortissimum mortis genus si causa cohonestasset}. Of Sangro too, having reported the rumour that Louis XIV. sent him a reprieve which arrived too late, he adds : " whence the condemned man, who had already suffered the penalty, is the more to be pitied " (unde maior damnati qui iam poenas Persolverat, miser atio] . 3 He must have known, and doubtless did know, that most of the persons whose praises he composed were of very little worth. To read his panegyrics, one would suppose that Naples was adorned with a nobility resplendent in its virtue, cultivation and learning : and yet, in giving Father De Vitry the information he desired upon the condition of studies in 1 Letter of December 4, 1729 : in Opp. vi. p. 32. 8 Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 366. 3 Opp. i. pp. 367, 368. 35* THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA V1CO Naples, Vico did not conceal the facts : " the nobles slumber amid the enjoyments of a life of pleasure." x His pupil Antonio Genovesi has preserved to us one of his satirical expressions upon this nobility, often in extreme poverty but always proud and ready to go hungry at home in order to drive abroad in coaches sumptuously dressed. 2 With reference to the literary duke of Laurenzano, he formulated the theory that " noble " writers could not fail of excellence : 3 and yet I have discovered among his papers the manuscript of a book by this duke, rewritten from end to end by the same Vico. 4 Such are the contradictions and the transactions into which a poor man falls when the pressure of want has made him timid and cautious ; so that it is not easy to determine how far his admiration was merely assumed at command or by com- plaisance, or how far his feeling of social inferiority developed into a real admiration for those above him in the scale, who possessed riches and dignity and everything he lacked and were the " seigneurs." in For, as is well known, his financial state was always of the gloomiest. The son of a small Neapolitan bookseller, he was at first compelled to go as a private tutor to a wild town of the Cilento ; later, returning to Naples, he tried in vain to obtain the position of secretary of the city, and having in 1699 been elected to the chair of rhetoric, he held that position for thirty-six years at an annual stipend of a hundred ducats (17). His attempt to pass to a chair of greater importance in 1723 failed, whether owing to ill-luck or to inability he recognised that he was a " man of little spirit in matters of utility," 6 he was compelled to give up hopes of academic advancement. He was therefore obliged to eke out his resources by literary work such as we have mentioned, and still more by private lessons ; he not only kept school at his own house as well as at the university, but he went up and down other men's steps to teach grammar to youths or even to children. His family life was not a happy one. His wife was illiterate, and had not the qualities with which her sex 1 Opp. vi. p. 9. 8 He said that many of them " dragged their carriages with their own guts " (Suppl. alia Bibl. vich. p. 10). 8 Opp. vi. p. 95. * Bibl. vich. pp. 27-8. * Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 349. APPENDIX I 253 sometimes compensates the defect ; she was incapable of any domestic employment whatever, so that her husband had to take her place. Of his children, one girl died after a long illness and the heavy expenses which embitter the diseases of the poor ; one boy showed such strong vicious tendencies that the father was compelled to seek the intervention of the police and place him in a house of correction. So sublimely irrational was his fatherly affection that upon this occasion when he saw from the window the police officers he had called in, coming to take his miserable and beloved son away, he ran to him crying, " my son, flee I " l He was indeed of an extremely affectionate disposition ; a fact which may be gathered for instance from the noble and touching speech he composed on the death of his friend Donna Angela Cimini, from the tone of pity and indignation with which in the Scienza Nuova he spoke of the oppressed plebeians whose history he is investigating or of the tragic figures of Priam and Polyxena, the romance of which he feels keenly ; and finally, from certain stylistic details scattered here and there, such as the aphorism (no. xl.) where he says that witches in order to solemnise their rites " slay without pity and cut in pieces most lovely and innocent children," quite upset, in the most inopportune but significant fashion, by the fate of these little persons, whom his excited imagination adorns with a superlative loveliness. His greatest domestic happiness came from his daughter Luisa, a cultured and poetical soul, and his son Gennaro, who shared with him and ultimately succeeded to his chair. When, in his panegyric on the Countess of Althann, he calls ironically upon the philosophers who dispute as they walk in pleasant gardens or beneath painted porticoes, free from the agony and weariness of " wives in travail " and " children wasting away with disease," 2 we feel that he is speaking from his own experience and smarting under the memory of domestic troubles. We often meet, especially in these days, with men of some talent who consider themselves freed from this or that humble duty : and we ought the more to admire this man of genius who on the contrary accepted them every one, and (to use a phrase of Flaubert's) while thinking the thought of a demigod lived the life of a townsman or even that of a man of the people. He had acquired the habit of reading, writing, thinking and 1 Villarosa in the additions to the Autobiography (Opp. iv. p. 420). * Opp. vi. p. 235. 254 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO composing his works " while discussing matters with his friends amid the uproar of his children." x His health was never very good : his friends called him " Mastro Tisicuzzo " : 2 very weak in youth, he was in his old age afflicted with ulcers in the throat and pains in his thighs and legs. In a word, the repose, the peace, the tranquillity which other philosophers enjoy all their life or for long periods together was always lacking to Vico. He was forced to play both Martha and Mary : working at every moment for his own and his family's practical needs and working at the same time to fulfil the mission to which he was devoted from his birth and to give concrete form to the spiritual world that moved within him. IV Thus we need not invent or demand a heroic Vico, looking for him in the life of religion, society or politics. The true hero is the Vico who stands before us, the hero of the philo- sophic life. Others beside ourselves have noticed his love for the word " hero " and all its derivatives, " heroism," " heroic," and so on : and the continual use and varied application he makes of it. Heroism was for him the mighty virgin force which appears in the beginning and reappears in the reflux of history. This force he must surely have felt in himself as he laboured for the truth and, overthrowing obstacles of every kind, opened up new paths of science. It was this force that enabled him to overcome the youthful uncertainties, fears and defeats which sometimes plunged him in a profound individual and cosmic pessimism, visible in the poem entitled " Feelings of One in Despair," to rise to the certainty of scientific method enunciated in the De nostri temporis stttdiorum ratione and his first attempt at philosophico-historical research repre- sented by the De antiquissima Italorum sapientia ; and from this point, abandoning in part his own thought and weaving a new tissue of what remained, led him to the De uno universi iuris principio et fine uno and to the Scienza Nuova " after twenty-five years," as he says of the discoveries contained in that work, " of unremitting and toilsome thought." The work completed by this poor teacher of grammar and rhetoric, by this pedagogue whom a contemporary satirist 1 Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 366. 1 " Mr. Skin-and-bones " : cf. Bibl. vich. p. 87. APPENDIX 1 255 saw " lean, with a rolling eye, ferule in hand," l by this un- happy paterfamilias, is amazing and almost terrifying ; such is the mass of mental power compressed into it. It is a work at once reactionary and revolutionary : reactionary in relation to the present, by its attachment to the traditions of the ancient world and the Renaissance ; revolutionary as against the present and the past in laying the foundations of that future later to be known as the Nineteenth century. Within the domain of science, this humble man of the people became an aristocrat : and the " lordly style " 2 which he falsely ascribed to the wretched writings of the proud nobles and pompous prelates of his day was in reality his own. He loathed the polite and social literature which was gradually spreading in France and Italy and other European countries, the " ladies' books." 8 But he avoided no less that other class of treatise which we nowadays call " handbooks," which explain in detail elementary definitions and facts ascertained by others ; books useless except to the young. 4 Vico, who suffered quite enough from the young within the circle of his school, saw no need to sacrifice to them any part of his own inviolable lif e of science. The public towards which he looked was not composed of boys, lords and ladies. When he wrote, his first practical thought was, " what would a Plato, a Varro or a Quintus Mucius Scaevola think of the fruits of his thought ? " and secondly, " what will posterity think ? " 5 Among his contemporaries he looked only at the republic of letters, the brotherhood of scholars, the Academies of Europe : a public which did not require him to repeat what had been already discovered and stated in the course of the history of science, and was perfectly familiar to him, but only demanded the exposition of such thoughts as constituted a real advance of knowledge : not voluminous works, but " little books, all full of original things." 6 His public was an ideal one, which sometimes in his simplicity he confused with the actual professional scholars and the critics of literary reviews : and the mistake often caused him surprise. Short books on metaphysical subjects seemed to him to have a peculiar power, as in fact they have ; he compares them very justly with religious meditations " which briefly set forth a small number of points " and are more valuable for the development of the 1 Bibl. vich. p. 82. 2 Opp. vi. p. 93. 3 Ibid. vi. p. 5. * Ibid. ii. p. 123. 5 Ibid. v. p. 50 (note). Ibid. ii. p. 148. 256 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO Christian spirit than " the most eloquent and lucid sermons of the most gifted preachers." x This love of brevity inspires his refusal to burden with many books the republic of letters, which, he says, is already sinking beneath the weight. He left his discourses unpublished, only printed his De ratione out of a sense of duty, and often expressed a desire that the Scienza Nuova alone should survive him, as the work which summed up in itself the concentrated and perfected fruits of all his earlier efforts. His aristocratic ideal was accompanied by the loftiest dignity and the profoundest loyalty in his conception of the life of science. From his polemics we might compile a whole catechism on the right method of conducting literary con- troversy. We must aim at victory, he says, not in the con- troversy but in the truth ; hence he desires that it should be conducted " in the calmest manner of reasoning," because " he who is strong does not threaten, and he who is right does not use insults " ; the dispute must at any rate be interspersed with peaceful words " showing that the minds of the dis- putants are placid and tranquil, not excited and perturbed." To opponents whose objections are vague he replies, " the judgment is in too general terms : and serious men never deign to reply except to particular and determinate criticisms made upon them." When these same opponents appeal to the " refined taste of the age, which has banished," etc., etc., he replies contemptuously, " a grave criticism this, in truth : it is no criticism at all. In thus taking refuge from one's opponents before the tribunal of one's own judgment, by saying that what they say is a thing of which one has no idea, from an opponent one becomes the judge." He refused to rely upon his authorities, but yet did not undervalue them ; authority ought to " make us attentive to seek the causes which could have induced authors, especially the most weighty, to adopt such and such opinions." Again, accused of attribut- ing errors to philosophers so as to be able to refute them witf ease, like Aristotle, he protests with dignity : " I would rather enjoy my own small and simple stock of knowledge than be compared in bad faith with a great philosopher." His moderation may be illustrated by his splendid eulogy of Descartes, though he spent the best part of his mental powers hi opposing him. His loyalty is shown by his prompt recogni- 1 For instance in his letter to Saliani, November 18, 1725, published in Bibl. vich. pp. 97-8, the autograph being in my possession. APPENDIX I 257 tion of his own errors : "I admit," he says at one point to the critics of the Giornale dei letter ati, " that my distinction is faulty." * " The reader must not think it ostentatious in us " (he writes in the second Scienza Nuova), " that not satisfied with the favourable judgments of such men as these upon our works, we yet disapprove and reject these works. On the contrary, it is a proof of the high veneration and respect in which we hold these men. For rude and haughty writers uphold their works even against the just accusations and reasonable corrections of others : some, who by chance are of a small spirit, sate themselves with the favourable judg- ments they receive and because of these go no further towards perfection : but in our case the praise of great minds has increased our courage to amend, to complete, and even to recast in a better form this work of ours." 2 His scientific life was upright, worthy of a serious searcher after truth ; his emotional life disturbed and restless, worthy of one who sees face to face the truth he has long sought and desired, and rejoices in the power of laying it before mankind. Hence his lofty poetry, expressed not in verse but in prose, and especially in the Scienza Nuova, " Vico is a poet," writes Tommaseo : "he brings fire from smoke, and lively images from metaphysical abstractions : he reasons as he narrates and depicts while he reasons : over the mountain-tops of thought he does not walk, he flies ; and in one sentence he often compresses more lyrical feeling than may be found in many an ode." 3 De Sanctis saw in the Scienza Nuova the progress of a poem, almost a new Divina commedia. Sublime like Dante, he was more severe than Dante himself ; if the lips of the Ghibelline show at times the flicker of " a passing smile," Vico looks at history with a face " that never smiles." Moreover, the man whose style has been so often criticised is not a commonplace writer ; he was as careful a student of pure Tuscan 4 as he was a fine connoisseur, according to Capasso, of Latin phraseology. 5 But he was faulty in the arrangement of his books, because his mind did not master all the philosophical and historical material it had accumu- 1 See the Riposte in Opp. ii. passim. 2 Opp. v. p. 10. 3 G. B. Vico e il suo secolo in the volume La Storia civile nella lettera- tura (Turin, Loescher, 1872), p. 104 : cf. a judgment on Vico as a writer, ibid. pp. 9-10. * Opp. iv. pp. 333-4 ; vi. pp. 41, 140. 5 Bibl. vich. p. 87. S 258 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO lated ; he wrote carelessly because wildly and as if possessed by a demon : and hence arise the lack of proportion and the confusion in the various parts of his work, within single pages and single paragraphs. He often gives the impression of a bottle of water quickly inverted, in which the liquid trying to issue forth so presses against the narrow opening " that it comes out painfully, drop by drop." Painfully, by fragments, and disjointedly. One idea while he is expressing it recalls another, that a fact, and that another fact : he tries to say everything at once, and parenthesis branches off into paren- thesis in a manner to make one's brain reel. But these chaotic periods, weighted as they are with original thoughts, are no less woven of striking phrases, statuesque words, phrases full of emotion, and picturesque images. A bad writer, if you will, but his is the kind of bad writing of which only great writers possess the secret. The philosophical heroism of Vico asserts itself not only in the internal struggle with himself for the elaboration of his science. It was exposed to other and sterner trials. The position reached by his thought, opposed as it was to the present, and while apparently reactionary turned in reality towards the future, inevitably prevented him from being under- stood. No doubt this is the fate of every man of genius : his inmost thought is never understood, even when social fortune seems to favour him, even when he arouses enthusiasm and finds a host of disciples and imitators. The words which Hegel is said to have uttered on his deathbed " one only of my pupils understood me, and he misunderstood me "- admirably express this historical necessity : the man whcm his age fully understands dies with his age. And yet the dis- proportion between the value of a man's thought and his contemporaries' failure to understand it has seldom if ever been greater than in Vice's case. If he had been free from other causes of discontent, this alone would have been sufficient. The " desire for praise," which in other than commonplace minds is a desire to see what they think true and good shared, approved and universalised among other minds, was always with him a " vain desire." He was the more afflicted by this misunderstanding and indifference because, as we may well suppose, he was fully APPENDIX I 259 conscious of the importance of his own discoveries. He knew that Providence had entrusted to him a lofty mission : he knew himself to be " born for the glory of his country, and therefore in Italy ; since, being born there and not in Morocco, he became a scholar." 1 When he published the Scienza Nuova, he believed that he had fired a mine whose loud ex- plosion he expected every minute. Nothing happened : nobody mentioned it to him : so that he wrote some days later, to a friend : "In publishing my work in this city I seem to have launched it upon a desert. I avoid all public places, so as not to meet the persons to whom I have sent it, and if by chance I do meet them, I greet them without stopping ; for when this happens, these people give me not the faintest sign that they have received my book, and so confirm my impression of having published it in a wilderness." a He had frankly expected a swift and immediate effect : he had hoped to find, among his contemporaries and acquaint- ances at Naples, minds ready and intellects open to receive and bear fruit of his thoughts : and he hoped this of monks engaged in composing and learning by rote wordy sermons, poetasters rhyming in sonnets and advocates compiling second- hand speeches ! Instead of this, he found many sceptical and indifferent, and several inclined to laugh. His Diritto universale had been as Metastasio informs us 3 generally " blamed for obscurity " on its publication ; it was not widely read and was hastily criticised for the extravagances which an inattentive and superficial reading revealed at every point. 4 Father Paoli, to whom the author had given a copy, wrote in it a couplet making a joke of its unintelligibility. 5 The Scienza Nuova was in an even worse case. We know that Nicola Capasso, a scholar and well disposed towards Vico, on trying to read it fancied he had lost his wits, and by way of a joke hurried off to his doctor Cirillo, to have his pulse felt. 6 A Neapolitan nobleman when asked by Finetti at Venice what opinion was held of Vico at Naples, said that for a time he had passed for a really learned man, but that later his strange opinions had won him the reputation of an eccentric. " And when he published the Scienza Nuova ? " insisted Finetti. "Oh, by 1 Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 385. 2 Letter to Giacchi, November 25, 1725, in Opp. vi. p. 28. 3 Bibl. vich. p. 40. * Opp. vi. p. 20. 6 Bibl. vich. p. 26. Ibid. p. 87. 260 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO then, ' ' replied the other, ' ' he was quite mad ! " 1 His detractors even attacked him in the modest profession by which he earned his living ; they said he was " good at teaching youths who had completed their course, that is to say when they already knew all they needed," or again, more insidiously, that he was fitted less for teaching than for " giving good advice to the teachers themselves ; " 2 so that they recognised his superiority only to use it in damaging his private interests. VI The indifference of the public and the insincerity or malignity of critics could not for Vico be compensated by the friends and appreciative readers of whom Vico had a certain number. How indeed could it have been otherwise, when he cultivated them artificially with such care and anxiety ? Consider for instance the way in which he cultivated the friendship of Giacchi the Capucin. He praised his " admirable works," his " most divine talents," the " rare sublimity " of his " marvellous and divine ideas." He tells him that he has given to the scholars of the city the eulogistic letter sent to him by Giacchi and that they all admire " the sublime workmanship of the conception " ; and yet he himself used to rewrite in scholar's Latin the inscriptions Giacchi composed in monk's Latin ! 3 On another occasion he wrote that the praises of a Giacchi had excited envy and had in certain quarters been described as flatteries. He took no less pains :o propitiate the Archbishop of Bari, Muzio di Gaeta, a conceited creature full of his own merits and incapable of speaking except about himself. Muzio wrote a panegyric on Pope Benedict XIII., a work of which, though Vico praised it again and again, he had never heard enough, and was always covertly or openly demanding new praises. So Vico used to besprinkle him patiently with the desired fluid : " the marvellous work of Your Excellency " ; his " lordly diction " ; his " Demosthenic digressions " ; his eloquence, that philosophic speech employed in Greece by the Academic school, in Rome by Cicero, and " among the Italians by none but Your Excellency ! " To the advocate Francesco Solla, who had been his pupil and had 1 Bibl. vich. p. 86 : cf. Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 416. * Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 416. 8 Published by me in Napoli nobilis, xiii. (1904), f. i., and again in Secondo suppl. alia Bibl. vich. pp. 70-2. APPENDIX I 261 subsequently retired into the country, he hinted that the Scienza Nuova looked towards him as one of the few men in the world possessed of a mind penetrating enough to receive it unhampered by any prejudices concerning the origin of mankind. 1 Such were the guileless artifices and the pitiful little schemes by which he contrived to give an illusory satis- faction to his thirst for recognition and praise, and a narcotic to his overwrought nerves. But the final results were miser- able enough. Giacchi's letters contain not a word to show that he had ever grasped one of Vice's doctrines or even that he had examined them with any serious interest. Monsignor di Gaeta, after a labyrinth of circumlocutions, admits that he " admired more than he understood " of Vico's works ; 2 and possibly he was so much occupied in admiring his own prose that he never read them at all. Solla, in whom Vico placed such hopes, thought the discourse on the death of Angela Cimini superior to all the author's other works, in- cluding the Scienza Nuova itself. Vico received a no less incautious compliment from another admirer ; though a warm and affectionate one, Esteban. 3 Compliments of a vague and unintelligent kind sometimes reached him in return for the copies of his works which he sent not only to Neapolitan scholars but to those of Rome, Pisa, Padua and even Germany, Holland and England : he sent a copy to Isaac Newton. 4 Generally, however, these gifts were received in contemptuous silence. At most, Vico acquired the reputation of a scholar among hundreds of scholars, a man of letters among thousands of similar men ; a learned man, but nothing more. Among the modest, the insignificant, and the young, Vico no doubt had strong admirers. Among these were the poet, later a sacred orator, Gherardo de Angelis, Solla and Esteban whom we have mentioned, the monk Nicola Concina of Padua, and some more. But though their affection was strong their intelligence was weak. Even Concina admitted while rhapso- dising his enthusiasm that he did not very clearly comprehend his master : " Oh, what fruitful and sublime lights are here ! If only I had the talent to make use of them, to comprehend their depth and the wonderful art of which I seem to catch a glimpse ! " 5 The best service that these friends could do him was to soothe with kindly words Vico's embittered spirit, 1 Opp. vi. p. 17. 2 Ibid. p. no. 8 Bibl. vich. pp. 103-5. 4 Opusc., ed. Villarosa, ii. p. 277. 6 Opp. vi. p. 145. 262 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO if they could not do so by following his inmost thoughts. This is what Esteban does at the close of the letter in which he excuses himself for his foolish remark on the funeral speech of Angela Cimini in phrases he must have gathered from the master's lips: "Be confident, Sir, that Providence, through channels unimagined by yourself, will cause to spring up for you a perennial fountain of immortal glory ! " x The Jesuit Father Domenico Lodovico, who wrote the couplet inscribed beneath Vice's portrait, on receiving the Scienza Nuova sent to the author with much sound sense a little wine from the cellar and a little bread from the oven of the Jesuit house of the Nunziatella, together with a graceful letter begging the author to accept " these trifles, simple as they are, since the infant Jesus himself did not refuse the rude offerings of pastoral peasants." He suggested too that at the side of the alphabet in the symbolic frontispiece to the work a little dwarf should be added in the posture of one dumb with astonishment like Dante's mountaineer, and that beneath him should be written, " with a significant diaeresis," the name Lodo-vico ! 2 Among the young men of his school there were some who, nourished upon his doctrines, were ready to defend their master with their swords ; 3 but we all know the value of these youthful enthusiasms. If these scholars had really assimilated Vice's doctrines or any part of them, we should have found traces of it in the literature or culture of the next generation afte Vico ; but such traces are entirely absent. Hardly a single one of his formulae, his historical statements, or conceptions even superficially understood is to be found in Conti at Venice, Concina at Padua, Ignazio Luzan in Spain though the last named was living at Naples when the Scienza Nuova was published ; 4 or even, within the author's own neighbourhood, in Genovesi or Galiani. Envy, insincerity, gossip, calumny and stupidity provoked violent outbursts of anger on Vice's part. He confesses this fault in his autobiography where he says that he inveighed in too severe a manner against the errors of conception or doctrine or the incivility of his literary rivals, when in Christian charity and as a true philosopher he ought to have ignored or pardoned them. 5 But as a matter of fact this fault did not 1 Bibl. vich. p. 105. * " I praise Vico." Letter published by me in Bibl. vich. p. 107. 8 Bibl. vich. pp. 87-8. * Ibid. p. 44. 6 Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 416 : cf. the evidence of a pupil in Bibl. vich. p. 89. APPENDIX I 263 greatly distress him : he thought it rather an ornament. The funeral speech for Angela Cimini contained a kind of hymn to anger, the " heroic wrath which in noble spirits dis- turbs and shakes to the depths by its boiling all those evil thoughts of the mind, which beget the vile swarm of fraud, deceit and falsehood, and renders the hero frank, truthful and loyal ; and thus making him a partisan of truth, arms him as the valiant knight of reason to do battle with wrong and offence." 1 Although in his writings he guards " with all his power " against falling into this passion 2 we feel a scarcely repressed torrent of wrath in his private letters whenever he denounces the " miserable pedants " who " love learning more than truth," or the common tendency of man to be " all memory and imagination," and so forth. In conversation also, it seems, he could be very violent. When in 1736 Damiano Romano published a work controverting his theory of the Twelve Tables, Vico, although according to Romano himself he had been spoken of as " most learned " and " most famous," together with other titles of respect, " tore the book to pieces with his teeth in a way that made every one present tremble with horror," finding a sign of the deepest malignity in the fact that " a lad like myself should join issue with him." 3 But his outbursts of wrath were succeeded by fits of the deepest dejection. In a sonnet he speaks of himself as over- whelmed by that fate " which the unjust hate of others often creates," and says that for this reason he has separated himself from human society to live with himself alone. Some- times he shakes off this torpor for a moment : then, he says : I draw within myself again, and pressed By heavy cares, return to where I stood : 4 My fate and not my fault I do lament. VII But among all these troubles, obstacles and disappoint- ments, in the midst of this sadness which often draped his life in black, Vico enjoyed one of the loftiest joys accessible to man ; the " life of meditation " freed and purified from 1 Opp. vi. p. 254. 2 Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 416. 3 Bibl. vich. p. 88. 4 Sonnet published by G. Gentile, 77 Figlio di G. B. Vico (Naples, Pierro, 1905), p. 173. 264 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO passion, lived by man in solitude without the turbulent and grievous company of the body " : the life of security, because it is " made one with the soul always ready and present which shows man his being rooted in the Eternal that measures all times and walking in the Infinite that comprehends all finite things ; it crowns him with an eternal and immeasurable joy not restricted invidiously to certain places nor grudgingly to certain times ; but it can grow up within himself only if without envy of rivalry or fear of diminution it spreads and communicates itself unceasingly to more and more human minds." 1 That he has attained truth he never doubts, though he never ceases to elaborate it further ; with the system presented in the work on Universal Law, his mind, he says, " rested content." 2 The weariness and even the pain he had suffered were dear to him, because through them he arrived at his discoveries : "I bless the twenty-five full years I have spent in meditation upon this subject, in the midst of the adversities of fortune and the checks I have often received from the unhappy example of great thinkers who have attempted new and weighty discoveries." 3 How could he have done anything but bless these fatigues, pains and adversities, if, whenever he rose above the passionate per- turbations of the empirical man and the struggles of the practical man, his mind showed him the inevitable necessity of his toil and of his sufferings, two necessities fused into one another so as to become one and indivisible ? His own philosophical doctrine then brought him the remedy for his ills, and worked in his spirit the catharsis of liberation ; the doctrine of the immanent Providence, or as it was later called, historical necessity, which was his central thought. " Praise be to Providence for ever, which, when the weak sight of mortals sees in it nothing but stern justice, then most of all is at work on a crowning mercy ! For by this task I see that I am clothed upon with a new man ; I feel that everything that goaded me to bewail my hard lot and to denounce the corruption of literature that has caused that lot, has vanished ; for this corruption and this lot have strengthened me and enabled me to perfect my task. And more, it may perhaps not be true, but it would please me, were it true, that this labour has filled me with a certain spirit of heroism, through which no fear of death any longer 1 Opp. vi. p. 287. - Ibid. p. 1 8. 3 Ibid. pp. 153-4. APPENDIX I 265 disturbs me and my mind feels no disquietude at the words of my rivals. Lastly, it has established me as upon a mighty rock of adamant before the judgment of God, who rewards the work of creation by the approval of the wise, who are always and everywhere few in numbers . . . men of the loftiest intellect, of a learning all their own, generous and great-hearted, whose only labour is to enrich with deathless works the commonwealth of letters." * Thus Providence showed him the necessity of all that had befallen or should befall him in his life, taught him resignation and promised him glory. VIII So the hot-tempered man became at last tolerant : tolerant with that tolerance, that lofty indulgence which must not be confused with common toleration. The University, in which he had hoped for advancement and towards which he directed the thought of his earlier works, would have none of him ; he retired within himself to think out the Scienza Nuova. Now, says he with a smile in which we may still see a trace of bitterness, I owe this work to the University, which, by judging me unworthy of the chair and not wishing me to be " occupied in treating paragraphs," gave me leisure for meditation : " what greater obligation could I have ? " 2 A friend, Sostegni the Florentine, in a sonnet to Vico, let slip some words in condemnation of the city of Naples for making so little of her distinguished son. Vico in his reply justifies his native place in noble words, as being stern towards him because she expected and desired much of him : Stern mother, she caresses not her son, Lest so she fall into obscurity, But gravely listens, watching as he speaks. 3 This was the spirit that found expression in the Auto- biography, a work which has been misjudged and in fact entirely misunderstood by Ferrari, who censures its prevailing teleological tendency and laments the absence of a " psycho- logical " explanation of Vice's life ; 4 as if Vico had not himself explained that he was writing it from a " philosophical " 1 Opp. vi. pp. 29-30. * Ibid. p. 29. 3 Ibid. p. 446. 4 In the Introduction to vol. iv. of the Opere. 266 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO point of view. 1 And what is the meaning of a philosophical treatment of a philosopher's life but an understanding of the objective necessity of his thought and a perception of the scaffolding it involves even where the author at the moment of thinking did not clearly perceive it ? Vico " meditates upon the causes, natural and moral, and upon the occasions of his fortunes ; he meditates upon the inclinations or aversions he felt from childhood towards this or that branch of study ; he meditates upon the opportunities or hindrances which assisted or retarded his progress ; he meditates, lastly, upon certain efforts of his own in right directions which bore fruit in the reflections upon which he built his final work, the Scienza Nuova, which work was to demonstrate that his literary life was bound to have been what it was and not different. ' ' 2 Vico's A utobiography is, in a word, the application of the Scienza Nuova to the life of its author, the course of his own individual history : and its method is as just and true as it is original. Vico succeeded in part only of his attempt, and could not form a criticism and history of himself to the same extent to which a modern critic and historian is in a position to do whose efforts will again be improved upon by those of the future is too obvious to need emphasising. The Autobiography itself concludes with a blessing upon the author's hardships, a profession of faith in Providence and a sure expectation of fame and glory. IX In the last years of his life Vico, enfeebled by age, domestic trouble and illness, " entirely gave up his studies " : 8 My pen is slipping from my palsied grasp ; The door of my thought's treasury is closed, 4 he cries in two mournful lines of a sonnet in 1735. He prepared at this time additions and corrections for a possible reprint of the second Scienza Nuova, and incorporated them in the final manuscript of the work ; he thought for a time of printing his small work " on the Equilibrium of the Living Body " (De aequilibrio corporis animantis) composed many years earlier and now lost ; 5 he still discharged some of the duties 1 Autob. in Opp. iv. p. 402. 2 Ibid. 3 Ibid. p. 415. 4 Opp. vi. p. 425 (Sonnet on the marriage of Raimondo di Sangro, 1735). * Bibl. vich. pp. 38-9. APPENDIX I 267 of his office, such as the speech on the marriage of the king, Charles Bourbon, in 1738. But from 1736 or 1737 his son began to assist him in his professional work, and in January 1741 he was definitely appointed to the chair on his father's resignation. 1 Vico henceforth lived among his family like an old soldier exacta militia, thinking over his past battles and conscious of having done his life's work. His good son read to him for some hours every day out of the Latin classics he had once loved and studied so well. And in this evening of his life he was at least spared the crowning agony suffered in his last years by a philosopher more fortunate than himself, Immanuel Kant ; the agony of continuing and completing his system of philosophy, and wearing himself out in a fruitless struggle with thoughts that eluded his grasp and words that no longer obeyed him. Vico had said all he had to say ; a great historian of his own life, he knew the moment at which Providence had finished its work in him, closed the door of thought it had so freely opened, and ordered him to lay down his pen. 2 1 Gentile, // Figlio di G. B. Vico, pp. 30-48. 2 The documents and the scattered notes used in this lecture and quoted from the contents of my Bibliografia vichiana are now all collected in my edition of the Autobiografia, carteggio e poesie varie : cf . the present vol. infra, p. 308. APPENDIX II THE LATER HISTORY OF VICO'S THOUGHT * THE history of the vicissitudes of Vice's reputation must not be allowed to replace or be confused with the exposition and valuation of his thought, by losing sight of the history of philosophy properly so called or confusing it with the history of culture. 2 But even when we pass to this second history, we must guard against another kind of error, namely the pretence of determining by its means whether Vice's work was or was not of use in the advancement of culture, and what degree of utility we should grant it. The inquiry is meaningless, and the degree cannot be measured : for rightly considered one disciple may be worth tens or hundreds, one effect produced after centuries may compensate its age-long delay, one point undeservedly forgotten may become as notable and instructive as the best-deserved reputation, and one single truth twice discovered independently may from this re-discovery and seeming superfluity receive a confirma- tion of its inevitable necessity. The work of Vico such is the usual verdict was entirely useless, because it appeared out of its due time and prematurely, and remained unknown or was known only because it could convey nothing new. Such language is a blasphemy against history, which allows nothing to be useless and is always and throughout the work of Providence, whose vast utilities must not be measured by the pettiness of the human span. Was Vico appreciated in the course of the eighteenth 1 This appendix briefly recapitulates the chief results of my re- searches into the subject set forth in the Bibliografia vichiana and its two supplements (cf. the present volume, infra, p. 310), to which work I refer for fuller details and for the evidence for the facts here laid down. * See above, pp. 236, 237. 268 APPENDIX II 269 century ? Did any one read him, understand him and follow his lead ? The question has been answered with equal decision in the affirmative and the negative. The affirmative answer has been supported by a diligent collection of scattered passages up and down the writers of the century mentioning his name and doctrines and an accumulation of possible or apparent traces of his thoughts visible though unacknow- ledged in Italian and foreign literature. But a thinker like Vico can only be said to be known when his fundamental thought has been grasped and the spirit that animated him has been felt. Now the majority of the facts alleged as proof of the efficacy of his work concerns particular doctrines detached from the whole and accepted or contested just like those of any other scholar and critic or any paradox-monger of his time. This is true in the first place of his theory on the origin of the Twelve Tables, discussed in the controversy between Bernardo Tanucci and Guido Grandi from 1728 to 1731, contested in 1736 by Damiano Romano, accepted in France by Bonamy in 1735 and recalled in 1750 by Terrasson ; of the views on the history and primitive government of Rome, mentioned by Chastellux, adopted and expanded by Duni, and used by Du Bignon who learnt them from Duni ; of the hypotheses as to the prehistoric period and the origins of humanity, employed and modified by Boulanger in France and Mario Pagano in Italy ; and lastly, of some conceptions upon poetry and language which reappear in Pagano, Cesarotti and some others. A more essential question was that of the method of studying and judging political institutions and laws ; a question upon which Montesquieu has been compared with Vico and accused of freely using the Scienza Nuova without acknowledg- ing his debt. It is now established through Montesquieu's journal that in 1728 Antonio Conti at Venice advised the future author of the Esprit des Lois to buy Vico's book at Naples ; and Montesquieu must have followed this advice on reaching Naples in the following year ; for a copy of the 1725 edition of the Scienza Nuova is still preserved in the library at the chateau of La Brede. But the mind of the French writer was too different from and inferior to that of Vico to draw vital nourishment from a work such as the Scienza Nuova ; and the traces of imitation alleged to have been discovered in the Esprit des Lois are very doubtful and in any case of minor importance. It must be said on the other hand that the 270 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO merit generally attributed to Montesquieu of having intro- duced the historical element into positive laws and thus considering legislation in a truly philosophical manner (as Hegel said later), that is, as a moment depending upon a totality relative to all the other determinations which go to form the character of a people or a period ; this merit, in order both of time and of excellence, belongs in reality to Vico. Like Montesquieu in the science of legislation, so Wolf in the Homeric question has been suspected of tacitly deriving help from Vico's speculations. But at the time when he published the Prolegomena ad Homerum in 1795 Wolf did not know the Scienza Nuova ; which he knew in name only in 1801 and in fact the year after, when Cesarotti presented him with the book. We must observe that Vico's judgment as to the barbaric nature of the Homeric epos and the absence in it of esoteric wisdom had been published in 1765 by the Gazette litteraire de I' Europe ; and further, that the Scienza Nuova was known and used by the Danish philologist and archaeologist Zoega, who quotes it in an essay on Homer composed in 1788 though not published till long afterwards ; and that Zoega corresponded with Heyne, who afterwards accused Wolf of having derived from his own lectures the theory set forth in the Prolegomena. Heyne had in fact expressed the idea of a gradual genesis of the Homeric poems in 1790. In a word we may say that Vico's views had to some extent penetrated into the atmosphere of German philology : in which case W T olf may have originally had a certain indirect knowledge of them. Even apart from this indirect com- munication the fact remains, and is recognised by all students of the question, that the Homeric theory conceived by Wolf must really be called not Wolfian but Vician, since such it truly is in its fundamental characteristics. Moreover, Wolf, as a philologist far superior to Vico but much less great as a thinker, was not in a position to understand the ideas which had led his predecessor to the doctrine he held concerning Homer : a fact which is clear from the somewhat superficial article he wrote on the subject in 1807. There was certainly at Naples during the eighteenth century a vague consciousness in many minds of the greatness of Vico's work ; but in what precisely this greatness consisted nobody could determine, owing to the lack of adequate experience and preparation. Outside Italy, especially in APPENDIX II 271 Germany, where this preparation existed or at least was much greater, Vice's work remained generally unknown, partly through the discredit into which Italian books had fallen since the end of the seventeenth century, and partly through the difficulties which Vice's style presented to a foreign reader. When the Scienza Nuova did fall into the hands of men com- petent to understand it, a series of insignificant accidents interposed to prevent such an understanding. Hamann procured the Scienza Nuova from Florence in 1777, at which time he was engaged upon economics and physiocracy, fancy- ing that it dealt with these subjects ; and the delusion was not dispelled when in glancing over it he found himself faced by a collection of philological studies and studies carried out with considerable carelessness. Goethe received it at Naples in 1787 from Filangieri, who warmly recommended it, took it back to Germany and lent it in 1792 to Jacobi ; but it was a happy coincidence rather than a true knowledge or a clear intuition that led him to couple Vice's name with that of Hamann. Herder, who may also have known Vice's work less through his correspondence with Hamann in 1777 than by his travels in Italy in 1789, speaks of it in 1797 in quite general terms, without noticing one of the many connexions between Vice and himself, especially as regards the theory of language and poetry. The only men in the eighteenth century who really to some extent penetrated into the fundamental thought of Vice and proclaimed though unwillingly his genuine greatness were and this is another proof of the solid mental fibre of Catholi- cism his Catholic opponents, of whom there were plenty : Romano, Lami, Rogadei, and above all Finetti. They saw that in spite of his stubborn protestations of religious ortho- doxy Vice held a conception of Providence very different from that of Christian theology ; and that though he continually used the name of God he never allowed him to operate effect- ively in history as a personal God ; that he made so sharp a distinction between sacred and profane history as to reach a purely natural and human theory of the origin of civilisation, by means of the state of nature, and of the origin of religion, by means of fear, shame and the imaginative universal ; while the traditional Catholic doctrine admitted a certain communication between sacred and profane history, and recognised in pagan religion and civilisation the leaven of some kind of vague recollection of the primitive revealed truth ; 272 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO that though protesting that he accepted and reinforced the authority of the Bible, he threatened and shook it on many points ; and that his criticism of profane historical tradition, conducted in a haughty spirit of rebellion against the past, might open the road to the most dangerous abuses, since it provoked the application of the same spirit and method to sacred history, which happened in the case of Boulanger. 1 In this accusation are faithfully indicated all the points destined later to enter into the nineteenth century's solemn eulogy of Vico. Thus churchmen began to be suspicious of him ; and this bore fruit later in the restoration period, in the anti-Vician polemic of Bishop Colangelo, and somewhat earlier in a verdict of the royal censor Lorenzo Giustiniani, who pronounced the Scienza Nuova " a work marking a most unfortunate crisis in European history." This tendency was opposed by the enthusiastic young students of social and political matters at Naples at the end of the eighteenth century, preparing themselves for an active part in the imminent revolution. Among them Vico came to be considered as an anti-clerical and anti-Catholic, and the legend arose, mentioned elsewhere in this volume, that Vico purposely and deliberately made his work obscure in order to escape ecclesiastical censure. These young men applied themselves to the study and praise of the Scienza Nuova ; they proposed to reprint it, since it had become rare, together with the other works and unpublished manuscripts of the author ; they prepared expositions and criticisms of Vice's philosophical and historical system ; some like Pagano tried to work it up afresh by adding to it the ideas of French sensa- tionalism, others like Filangieri did not let their admiration of it dispel their rosy dreams of reform. In 1797 the German Gerning on coming to Naples noted the zeal with which Vico was studied, and projected a translation or at least a summary of the Scienza Nuova in German. When the fall of the Neapolitan Republic in 1799 drove these young men, or rather those of them who escaped the massacres and the gallows of the Bourbon reaction, into exile in Northern Italy and especially in Lombardy, the cult of Vico was for the first time ardently propagated. Vincenzo Cuoco, Francesco Lomonaco, Francesco Salfi and other southern patriots passed the knowledge of the Scienza Nuova to Monti, who mentioned 1 Labanca has devoted a highly instructive volume to the Catholic criticisms of Vico : see the present volume, infra, p. 309. APPENDIX II 273 it in his inaugural lecture at Pavia in 1803, to Ugo Foscolo, who absorbed many of its ideas into his poem the Sepolcri and his critical essays : to Alessandro Manzoni, who was later to institute in his Discorso sulla storia longobarda a famous comparison between Vico and Muratori : and to others of less importance. Cuoco introduced Vice's work to Degeirando, then at work on his Histoire comparee des systemes philo- sophiques ; another exile, De Angelis, put the Scienza Nuova into the hands of Jules Michelet ; Salfi mentioned Vico in articles in the Revue Encyclopedique and in books and minor works in French. It was also through the suggestion of these Neapolitans that the Scienza Nuova was reprinted at Milan in 1801 ; and other editions and collections of Vice's smaller works were not long in appearing. Thus in the first decade of the nineteenth century Vice's reputation, which had till then been merely local to Naples, spread over the whole of Italy. But, suitably to their personal disposition and to the spirit of the times, the first and chief debt which the patriotic students of Vico owed to his thought was political in character or rather belonging to political philosophy ; and consisted in a criticism of that Jacobinism and philo-Gallicism of which they had had such unhappy experience in the events of I799- 1 Vice's thought led them to more concrete concepts ; and this is particularly visible in Vincenzo Cuoco's admirable Saggio storico sulla rivoluzione napoletana (1800). Similarly Ballanche some decades later in his Essais de palingenesie sociale (1827) wrote that if Vico had been known in France in the eighteenth century he would have exercised a beneficial influence on the subsequent social revolutions. Another particular aspect of Vice's work, the reform undertaken by him of historical methodology and social science as an aid to history, was observed and emphasised by the archaeologist Cataldo lannelli in his work Sulla natura e necessita della scienza delle cose e delle storie umane (1818). Foscolo and those who drew their inspiration from him chiefly introduced into literary criticism and history something of Vico's conceptions on the historical interpretation of poetry. In Germany on the other hand Jacobi, who had read the De antiquissima, immediately placed himself in the centre of the Vician philosophy by discovering and pointing out in 1811, in his work Uber den gottlichen Dingen und ihrer Offen- barung, the close connexion between the principle of the con- 1 See above, pp. 247-9. T 274 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO vertibility of the true and the created and the Kantian theory that one can perfectly conceive and understand only what one is able to construct : a single step from which position leads, as he observes, to the system of identity. The same fact was recognised by Baader, who found in this system the confirmation and foundation of the principle enunciated by Vico. But the translation of the Scienza Nuova made by Weber in 1822 seems to have been unsuccessful ; and it does not appear that Vico was known to Hegel, with whom he has so many substantial and formal affinities, especially in the Phenomenology ; and whose mania for triads might be blamed just as the Catholic Finetti had blamed Vico for always standing " upon rule of three." The resemblances again of Vice's theories to the new German philological doctrines of Niebuhr, Miiller, Bockh and many others were not at all willingly admitted. The attitude of Niebuhr is characteristic. Whether he knew Vice's work or not when he published the first edition of his Romische Geschichte, he certainly knew it later through Savigny and through the article entitled Vico und Niebuhr published in 1816 by the Swiss Orelli ; and yet he continued to ignore him, through some kind of contempt or depreciation ; an attitude hardly praiseworthy but imitated by Mommsen. In France, the spread of knowledge concerning Vice's thought was due to Michelet, who translated his works and in his last years described Italy as " the second mother and nurse who in my youth suckled me upon Virgil, and in my maturity nourished me with Vico ; potent cordials that have many times renewed my heart." Michelet was the first or one of the first to proclaim, in his introduction, that Vico was not understood in the eighteenth century because he wrote for the nineteenth. Michelet was joined by Ballanche, of whom we spoke above, and also by Jouffroy, Lerminier, Chateaubriand, and Cousin, some of whom grasped the connexion between Vico and the German philosophy that Cousin was at this time propagating in France ; and later by Laurent, Vacherot, De Ferron, Franck, Cournot and many others. Vico was read and admired by Comte, who mentioned him in a letter to John Stuart Mill in 1844, and lastly L6on Gambetta conceived in his youth a general history of commerce upon the scheme of the Vician " reflux." The popularity of Vice's name in France at this period was so great that it is several times mentioned in joke in passages of Balzac's novels APPENDIX II 273 and in Flaubert's Bouvard et Pecuchet. But thought of the quality of Vico's could never have a very deep or lasting influence in the persistently intellectualistic and spiritualistic atmosphere of France. Perhaps the most conspicuous results it produced were the theories of Fustel de Coulanges on the ancient city and the origin of feudalism. But, to return to Italy, if the aspirations towards a national uprising, which tended to vindicate and glorify all the orna- ments Italy could boast, raised Vico's name almost to a level with that of Dante, the simultaneous renaissance of philosophy, which was shaking off the sensationalism and materialism of the eighteenth century, was bound to attach itself to the last great idealistic philosopher, to use his thoughts and to shelter itself behind his authority. Vico's complete works were now collected and editions of the single treatises multi- plied. And since in the national uprising two currents could be distinguished, partly successive and partly fused, the neo- Guelphian and the radical, and since this distinction was represented in the philosophical awakening by that between Catholic idealism and rationalistic idealism, the schools of Rosmini and Gioberti on the one hand and Bruno and Hegel on the other ; Vico, at once a Catholic and a free philosopher, lent himself admirably, as is easy to understand, to the con- trary sympathies and interpretations of the two schools. Thus originated two different pictures of him, both historically justified, though the one painted him as he would have wished to be, the other as he was. The Vico of the liberal Catholics was above all the Vico of the metaphysical points, the Platonist, the mystic of the unknowable God, the tradition- alist of the prologues to the Diritto universale, and hence the strictly Italian philosopher as opposed to those of the rest of Europe, sons of the Reformation : whereas the Vico of the rationalists, the bold and heretical author of the Scienza Nuova, is a European philosopher to be set side by side with Descartes and Spinoza, Kant and Hegel. The former picture may be seen in the works of Rosmini, Gioberti, Tommaseo and many others, among which we must not forget those of a Neapolitan writer of lofty spirit, Enrico Cenni, perhaps the best of all, who draws a loving picture of the Vico of the Catholics. The latter portrait is found in the philosophers and critics who from 1840 onwards acquired their education in the school of German idealism ; especially Bertrando Spaventa and Francesco de Sanctis, who were the first to see 276 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO clearly Vice's relations to earlier and later European thought and to substitute for mere observations and vague impressions on the subject a scientific interpretation and a determinate judgment. That the second school of interpreters and critics were in the right, and that the liberal or idealistic Catholics had taken up an untenable position and reproduced in their irresolution and incoherence the irresolution and incoherence of Vico himself, was proved by the fact, among others, that less liberal but more consistent Catholics like the Spaniard Jaime Balmes show an inflexible distrust and hostility towards the author of the Scienza Nuova. The study of history in Italy during this period was less deeply modified by Vico's influence ; chiefly perhaps because the impulse of the national uprising led to the neglect of primitive and Roman history and the devotion of all its best energies to research into the origin and vicissitudes of the Italian republics, a subject Vico had entirely ignored. On the other hand, jurisprudence especially in the south was dominated by his thought ; and though it produced in this field no great scientific results, it gave to the jurists a loftiness and breadth of judgment and a concreteness of view which were long remembered and regretted. After 1870, with the decay of philosophy in Italy and elsewhere, the study of Vico also decayed : and for more than forty years there was no demand for a reprint of his works. The monograph by Cantoni in the year 1867, in spite of some valuable passages, already shows unmistakable signs of the decadence, founded as it is upon the idea that Vico's value is greater according as he is less of a metaphysician and more of a psychologist and historian : a position due not so much to the intrinsic weakness ascribed to him by Cantoni in philo- sophical matters as to the implicit conviction on the critic's part that metaphysic in general is a valueless thing, useful only for rousing enthusiasm in the addled heads of southern Italians. The great idealist of the New Science was subjected, as a final insult, to the praises of the positivists, who in their astonishing ignorance almost amounting to innocence did not and still do not hesitate to allege as a confirmation of their formal profession of faith the words " verum ipsum factum," which according to them means that the truth is the fact which we see and touch. Writings making any serious contribution to the knowledge of any particular point on Vico's doctrines were rare. Interest in Vico only reawoke APPENDIX II 277 within the last decade with the general reawakening of philo- sophical studies. Of the two best comprehensive works on Vico published towards the end of last century one is due to the German Catholic Karl Werner (1881) who expounds his philosophical and historical doctrines with great care, judging them from the point of view of speculative theism, a theory evolved under the influence of Baader and the second philosophy of Schelling, and tending much more to the comprehension of Vico than the psychology of Cantoni. The other is the work of an Englishman, Robert Flint (1884), who wrote for the collection of Philosophical Classics a brief monograph upon the subject, accurate in detail, and if not profound at least guided by clear and sound sense. Recently Sorel in France has shown the fruitfulness of certain views of Vico's, especially that of the reflux, by applying them to the history of primitive Chris- tianity and the theory of the modern proletarian movement, while in Germany Biese and Mauthner have brought his con- ceptions of metaphor and language once more into favour. But in spite of all this Vico has never had justice done him in works devoted to the history of modern philosophy. These, in the case both of Hoffding's book and of the greatly superior work of Windelband, and in fact of all others, either pass over the Italian philosopher in complete silence or else merely mention him as an experimenter, later than Bossuet and earlier than Herder, in the dubious science of the " philo- sophy of history." This lack of attention arises partly from an insufficient knowledge of Vico's real nature ; his fertile activities in the theory of knowledge, in ethics, in aesthetic, in law and in religion are all hidden behind that one label " philosopher of history." Partly however it is due to the reaction of the history of politics and culture on the history of philosophy ; which produces the effect that thinkers whose social influence came to an end with the fall of the peoples or states to which they belonged, or who for some reason or other had no considerable influence on European civilisation, are sacrificed to others much less important from a philosophical point of view but more influential or better known as exponents of social life and representatives of cultural tendencies ; so that where it would be thought impossible to ignore, for example, Paley or d'Holbach or Mendelssohn, it seems natural to pass over Giambattista Vico, though in such company he is a giant among pigmies. The historical injustice of this 978 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO course has been already shown theoretically by the distinction we have emphasised between the history of philosophy and the history of culture ; and in Vice's special case by our whole work, which clearly shows the lacuna left by the omission of Vico in the general history of European thought at the beginning of the eighteenth century. APPENDIX III THE SOURCES OF VICO'S THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE 1 MY statement, that the criterion of knowledge contained in Vice's formula of the conversion of the true with the created is an original and modern principle, has been contradicted by certain Catholic editors ; who state that this doctrine, however true, is not original to Vico, and is indeed far from modern, being a purely Scholastic doctrine. If I thought otherwise, this was only due to my insufficient knowledge of Scholasticism. I might indeed ask at the outset how such complete ignor- ance of scholasticism were possible : an ignorance not of its manifold varieties and the tangled forest of its distinctions that would be comprehensible : but of no less a matter than the fundamental criterion of its theory of knowledge, the starting-point of modern thought and as such, it would seem, inevitably familiar to every student of the elements of philo- sophy. But since it is always useful to suspect oneself of ignorance, or even to believe oneself more ignorant than one really is, I will make so far as concerns myself a voluntary display of humility. I find it less easy, I confess, to extend the accusation of ignorance to all who, like myself, have failed to run Vice's criterion to earth in the scholastic lumber- room : Jacobi for instance, who on reading it as expressed in the De antiquissima, sees in it the first manifestation of Kantianism and absolute idealism : 2 or the Catholic theologian Baader, who finds its later development in Schelling's philo- 1 A lecture delivered before the Accademia pontaniana on March 10, 1912, and here reprinted from the Atti of that society, vol. xlii. 1 Von den gottlichen Dingen und ihrer Offenbarung (1811), W.W. iii- 351-354- 279 a8o THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO sophy of identity : 1 or the learned and subtle Spanish Thomist, Jaime Balmes, who treats it as a unique idea and attacks it from the scholastic point of view : 2 or the equally learned Catholic Bertini, who accepts and develops Jacobi's observa- tion : 3 or the eminent historian of philosophy Wilhelm Windel- band, who, while unacquainted with Vice's doctrines, on coming across indications of a similar thought in Sanchez's Quod nihil scitur was greatly struck by it and endorsed its value by the assertion that it was to bear fruit at a later date and in the hands of a greater philosopher, Immanuel Kant : * or again the specialist in the history of scholasticism, Karl Werner, the author of a careful monograph on Vico, 5 who nowhere notices the alleged scholastic character of Vico's theory of knowledge. Scholasticism must indeed be a diffi- cult and mysterious doctrine, if it is inaccessible to all these students, qualified and bound though they are to under- stand it. But we cannot pause on the threshold to speculate: we must plunge straight into the argument. In what part of scholasticism can we find Vico's criterion converting knowledge with creation ? The Thomistic saying, " truth and reality are convertible," ens et verum convertuntur , has been quoted : 6 but quotations of this kind are perhaps more calculated to confuse by words than to convince by facts. The same value attaches to the statement that Vico himself confessed the scholastic origin of his principle, since the very first chapter of the De anti- quissima begins with the words " in Latin, the truth and the fact reciprocate, or, as the scholastic mob says, convert," " Latinis verum etfactum reciprocantur, seu, ut scholarum vulgus loquitur, convertuntur." Here it is perfectly clear to any one on a moment's thought that Vico, Latinist as he was, meant 1 Vorlesungen iiber religiose Philosophic, W.W. i. 195, and Vorles. iiber spekul. Dogmatik, ib. ix. 106 (passages quoted by K. Werner, G. B. Bico, p. 324). * La Filosofia fondamentale, translated from the Spanish, Naples, 1851, bk. i. ch. 30-31. 8 Storia critica delle prove metafisiche di una realita sovrasensibile (Atti dell' Accademia di Torino, i. 1866), pp. 640-41. * Geschichte der neueren Philosophic (1878), 5th edition, i. 23. 8 G.B. Vico als Philosoph und gelehrter Forscher (Wien, 1881). It is well known that Werner has written upon St. Thomas, Duns Scotus, late Scholasticism, Suarez, Augustinianism, nominalism, etc. ' Th. Neal (A. Cecconi), Vico e I'immanenza, in the Roman Cultura contemporaries, , iii. (1911) parts 7-8, pp. 1-24, APPENDIX III 281 simply to substitute the Ciceronian " reciprocari " for the barbarous " converti." St. Thomas explained the meaning of his formula quite clearly, especially in the Summa Theologica, Part I. question xvi. art. 3. Here he asks whether the truth and the reality are convertible, utrum verum et ens convertantur ; to which he replies as follows : " that as the good is of the nature of the desirable, so the truth has the nature of knowledge. But in so far as a thing has existence in itself, thus far it is knowable. And for this reason it is said in De anima, Bk. III. text. 37 (431 b 21) that " the soul is in a sense all things " according to sense and intellect. And hence as the good is con- vertible with the existent, so is the true. But yet as the good adds to existence the nature of the desirable, so also the truth adds a reference to the intellect." (Quod sicut bonum habet rationem appetibilis, ita verum habet ordinem cognitionis. Unumquodque autem in quantum habet de esse, in tantum est cognoscibile. Et propter hoc dicitur in 3 de Anima, text. 37, quod ' anima est quodammodo omnia ' secundum sensum et intellectum. Et ideo sicut bonum con- vertitur cum ente, ita et verum. Sed tamen sicut bonum addit rationem appetibilis supra ens, ita et verum comparationem ad intellectum.} Nothing then can be known except what exists, and nothing can exist but what is good : existence, truth and goodness are all convertible. Thus, too, things are called good in so far as they correspond to the idea in their Creator's mind. " Each single thing partakes of the truth of its own nature in so far as it imitates the knowledge of God, like an artefact in so far as it agrees with the art " : " the knowledge of God is the cause of things " : " the knowledge of God is the measure of things." (Unumquodque in tantum habet de veritate suae natura, in quantum imitatur Dei scientiam sicut artificiatum in quantum concordat arti I. xiv. 12. Scientia Dei est causa rerum I. xiv. 12. Scientia Dei est mensura rerum I. xiv. 12.) But truth and goodness, the objects of intellect and will respectively, if on the one hand they are " convertible in reality," con- vertentur secundum rem, on the other they are " distinguishable in thought," diversificantur secundum rationem (I. lix. 2). What have these thoughts in common with Vice's idea that the condition of knowing a truth is to create it ? In fact, what is here stated is that the condition of making a thing is to know it, or as St. Thomas says in the same place (I. xiv. 8) 282 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO in St. Augustine's words (De Trinitate xv. 13) " Universas creaturas et spirituales et corporales non quia sunt ideo novit Dens, sed ideo sunt quia novit." (God does not know all His creatures corporeal and spiritual because they exist : but they exist because He knows them.) Vico makes no kind of mention of the formula ens et verunt convertuntur , though he knows and quotes a fact which has escaped my critics the analogous phrase " the true and the good are convertible," verum et bonum convertuntur : * a formula which he diverts to his own purposes, or rather unites it with his own. " In the first place," he writes, " I establish a truth which is convertible with the created, and in this sense I understand the good of the schools, convertible with existence : and hence I infer that the one and only truth is in God, since in Him is contained all Creation." 2 This union is reached quite openly by identifying verum with factum, then factum with ens, and finally the verum-factum-ens with the bonum : by substituting the doctrine of Vico for that of the schools. By such a method of interpretation one could reduce all doctrines to a single one, a perennis philosophia. I do not say that it would be a method entirely devoid of truth ; but it is certainly not a historical method. That Vico's criterion is not only different from but in- consistent with Thomism was shown, as I have already said, by Balmes ; who pronounced it " specious but devoid of solid foundation." He uses St. Thomas's statements to controvert Vico's theological doctrine that God understands because He creates, opposing to it the Scholastic view that He creates because He understands. He denies that the Word was conceived by the mere knowledge of what is contained in the divine omnipotence, for it is conceived not simply by creatures but also and chiefly by the cognition of the divine essence (" for the Father by understanding himself and the Son and the Holy Ghost and all other things embraced by His knowledge conceives the Word, so that thus the whole Trinity is implied in the Word, and also every creature " : Pater enim intellegendo se et Filium et Spiritum sanctum et omnia alia quae ejus scientia continentur concipit Verbum, ut sic tola Trinitas Verbo dicatur, et etiam omnis creatura] ; he objects that, granting this criterion, God could never know himself, because He is not His own cause. He denies that 1 Cf. Summa Theol. i. q. v. a. i : q. xxi. a. 1-2. * Prima risposta al Giornale dei letter ati (Opere, ed. Ferrari, ii. 117). APPENDIX III 283 intelligence is only possible through causality, inasmuch as it is also possible through identity. He accuses Vice's criterion of involving scepticism : in a word he maintains that the facts of knowledge are known by reason, even if they are not the products of reason. 1 I am not concerned to ask whether Balmes is right, or whether Vice's criterion can be reconciled with Christian theology. I am concerned merely with estab- lishing, not only by quotation from St. Thomas but also by the help of the judgment of an authoritative interpreter of his system that this doctrine is not Thomistic. Even granting that the criterion in question is irreconcilable with Thomism but not with an improved Christian theology, it is certainly irreconcilable with both in the form it adopts in what I have called " Vice's second theory of knowledge," in the Scienza Nuova, which Balmes either did not know or omitted to mention, and is passed over by my critics with a light-heartedness that is not particularly enviable. One of them asserts that " the alleged distinction " (the distinction that is drawn by myself) " between Vice's first and second theories of knowledge does not in point of fact exist, and produces no effects of any kind." What ? Has it no effects, when those historical studies and sciences of mind, which in the De antiquissima occupied the lowest position among mere probabilities became in the Scienza Nuova the truest of all true even in a higher degree than mathematics itself as dealing with the human world which " is man's creation ? " when their form is found " in the modifications of the actual human mind itself ? " when they have " a reality as much greater, as the reality of the laws of human affairs is greater than that of points, lines, areas and figures ? " a Is there no distinction, when we pass from the scepticism of the De antiquissima to the rationalism of the statement that these " proofs are of a divine nature," and must produce " a divine pleasure, since in God to know and to create are one and the same " ? 8 It is true that upon this point my attention has been recalled to a well-known passage of Galileo (Dialogo dei massimi sistemi), an especial favourite of our own Spaventa, 4 1 Balmes, loc. cit. * Scienza Nuova, ed. Nicolini, i. 187-8. 3 Ibid. p. 1 88. 4 Scritti filosofici, ed. Gentile, pp. 383-7, and Esperiema e metafisica, p. 218 sqq. 284 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO where we find the thought that the human intellect differs from the divine extensive but not intensive, and that if the divine intellect knows infinitely more about mathematical propositions because it knows them all, yet " of these few facts known by the human intellect, its knowledge is equal to that of the divine in objective certainty, since it attains comprehension of the necessity than which no greater certainty, it seems, can exist." But in any case Galileo was not a Schoolman, and moreover this pronouncement of his seemed so dangerous to the Christian theory of ideas, that he himself was obliged to alter it by admitting that while " so far as the truth of which mathematical proof gives no knowledge is concerned, this is identical with that which the divine wisdom knows," yet " the manner, in which God knows the infinitely numerous propositions of which we know a few, is immensely superior to our own, which proceeds discursively from one conclusion to another, while His is simple intuition." It is important too not to forget that this very statement figures among the heads of the accusation in Galileo's trial. 1 If the formula of the conversion of the true with the created is not found in Thomism, it may perhaps be found, at least in its original, sceptical or mystical, intention, in other tendencies of scholasticism or mediaeval philosophy generally. With Thomism Vico seems to have had neither acquaintance nor sympathy : but from his autobiography it is plain that he studied nominalism and the summaries of Petrus Hispanus and Paulus Venetus, though with little profit, 2 and later also, much more profitably, the Scotist philosophy ; which he considered the most Platonic of the Scholastic systems. 3 Traces of this appear in several views expressed in the De antiquissima, especially in those dealing with universals and ideas. In this direction, the direction that is to say of the Scotist system and the closely allied system of Occamism, I have attempted various researches, without attaining any remarkable results : further, I have applied for assistance to various specialists in Scholasticism, but in vain ; they would 1 See Gentile's note, loc. cit. * L'Autobiografia, il carteggio e le poesie vane, ed. Croce, pp. 4-5. Mauthner's assertion (Beitrdge zu einer Kritik der Sprache, Berlin, 1901, ii. 497-8) that Vico was a nominalist and that the great discoveries of the Scienza Nuova were due to his nominalism, is quite arbitrary and not founded correctly on his autobiography. 3 Autobiography, ed. cit. pp. 5-6. Pietro Giannone was also studying Scotism about 1690 (Vita scritta da lui medesimo, ed. Nicolini, pp. 6-7). APPENDIX III 285 do nothing but express their own superficial impressions or lose themselves in idle disputation. In general it seems possible to say that Duns Scotus's theory of knowledge presents points of affinity to that of Vico : for example, in the polemic against the Thomistic doctrine of the adaequatio intellectus et rei, which he refutes by applying it to the divine knowledge, since God knows objects as willed by Him, and they exist because He wills their existence without His being necessitated by them. 1 For Occam again the thought of objects has no reality and objectivity (or subjectivity according to the usage of Scholastic terminology, which is the reverse of modern) in God, and is nothing else than the objects themselves, known by God according to the possibility of creating them, in virtue of which they are thinkable to the divine mind. 2 But the question for Vico is not merely the priority of creation to knowledge or knowledge to creation, but the convertibility or identity of knowledge and creation. In certain recently published philosophical observations by Paolo Sarpi, 3 a nominalist of Occam's school, 4 the following statements are to be found. They are the more notable because standing as they do without any results in Sarpi's thought and being undeveloped in subsequent philosophy, they seem to be not his own invention but a mere repetition of scholastic dicta. " We have certain knowledge both of the existence and of the cause of those things which we under- stand fully how to create : of those which we know by experi- ence, we know the existence, but not the cause. We can however guess at it, and look simply for a possible cause : but out of many found to be possible we cannot be certain which is the true one. This fact may be seen in descriptions of astronomical theories, and would also be true in the case of a man who saw a clock for the first time. Of the various guesses, that of a man who knew how to make similar objects would be nearest the truth, e.g. one who understood the construction of machinery when he saw a different kind of machine : but none the less he will never on that account 5 know for certain. There are then three kinds of knowledge : 1 Werner, Johannes Duns Scotus (Wien, 1881), p. 76. 1 Werner, Die nachscotistische Scholastik (Wien, 1883), p. 82. * Scritti filosofici inediti, ed. Papini (Lanciano, Carabba, 1910). * See Gentile's observations on Papini's edition, in the Critica, review viii. 62-5. 6 Papini's edition has " po' " (little) : but his source, the Marcian MS., has an abbreviation to be read as " pero " (therefore). 286 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO first, knowledge how to make the object : secondly, experience of it : and thirdly, guessing at possibilities." This thought, then, namely that objects are known by their creator, and that God knows objects because He creates them, seems to have been current in the schools : and this explains the fact of its reappearing in an incidental manner and as an obvious truth in Francesco Sanchez's Quod nihil scitur (1581) where it is declared impossible " perfecte cognoscere quis quae non creavit ; nee Deus creare potuisset nee creata regere quae non Perfecte precognovisset 1 (that one should know perfectly things which he has not created : nor could God have been able to create nor after creating them to control things which He had not perfectly foreknown). But need we continue to look for it in the guise of a casual remark or an isolated proposition, devoid of philosophical connexion, in the works of philosophers or the lecture-rooms of the schools ? Did it not simply form a part of the common thought which daily declares that the man who has made a thing knows it better than he who has not made it ? Probably a little attention would reveal it in many and dissimilar treatises ; and for my own part, while reading the Chronicon of Otto of Freising the other day, I came across it in the introduction to the third book, where the chronicler, writing as is well known under the influence of St. Augustine's Civitas Dei, is arrested by the objection that God's designs in history are inscrutable, and delivers himself of the following reflections : " What then shall we do ? If we cannot understand, shall we hold our peace ? Then who will reply to those who flatter, repel those who attack, and by the reason and might of his words confute those who would destroy the faith that is in us ? So we cannot understand the secret counsels of God, and yet we are often compelled to give a reasonable account of these things. What ? Shall we reason about things which we do not understand ? We can give reasons, but human reasons, when yet we cannot understand the divine reasons. And thus it happens that when we speak of theo- logical matters, lacking the right words for them, we being men use our own words ; and in speaking of so great a God in human language, we use our words the more boldly quo ipsum figmentum nostrum cognoscere non dubitamus, because we never doubt that we know the thing we have ourselves formed : quis enim melius cognoscit quam qui creavit ? for who knows 1 Appendix to his Opera medico, (Tolosae Tectasogum, 1636), p. 10. APPENDIX III 287 a thing better than he who has created it ? " * The logic of the Abbot of Freising at this point may be thought a trifle sophisti- cal : but the fact remains that he refers to a common opinion that he knows things who has made them. But probably Vico was stimulated to the establishment of his criterion less by certain tendencies of Scotism or by current opinions than by the philosophers of the Renaissance, which he considered the golden age of metaphysical study, when shone, as he says, " Marsilio Ficino, Pico della Mirandola, Augustino Nifo and Augustino Steuco, Jacopo Mazzoni, Alessandro Piccolomini, Matteo Acquaviva and Francesco Patrizio." 2 In Ficino, whose name he couples with those of Plato and Plotinus, 3 and especially in his Theologia Platonica, Vico could read a magnificent description of the productive character of the divine wisdom and its parallelism with that of the geometrician. Nature, says Ficino, which is divine art, differs from human art in that it produces its creations from within, by living reasons : and " it does not touch the surface of matter by means of a hand or any other external instrument, as the soul of a geometer touches the dust when he describes figures upon the earth, but perinde ut geometrica mens materiam intrinsecus phantasticam fabricat, it operates like the mind of a geometer creating an imaginary matter from within itself. For as the geometer's mind, while it considers within itself the nature of figures, forms internally by pictures the image of figures, and by means of this image forms an imaginary spirit without any toil or design, so in the divine art of nature a wisdom of some kind by means of intellectual processes endows with natural seeds the life- giving and motive force itself which is its companion." 4 Vico must have recalled this passage in Ficino when in his inaugural lecture of 1699 he compared God, " the artist of nature," to the human mind which " we may without impiety call the God of art," just as he must have remembered it in the De 1 Ottonis Episcopi Frisigensis Opera, ex recens. R. Wilmans, i. Chronicon (Hannoveriae, 1867), pp. 118-19. * Autob. ed. cit. p. 21. 3 Ibid. p. 25. 4 Theologia Platonica (Bale, 1561), i. 123. This passage of Ficino has been quoted and commented on by my friend Gentile, in a highly important monograph on La prima fuse della filosofia di G. B. Vico (viz. the " inaugural lectures "), published in the miscellany in honour of Francesco Torraca (1912, see infra, p. 310) and read in MS. by myself, thanks to the courtesy of the author. 988 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO antiquissima where he compares God to the geometrician. 1 Vico might however have found thoughts of this kind in various Renaissance philosophers, not only in Ficino : among others, in Girolamo Cardano, who contrasts divine and human knowledge, though with a different conclusion ; and restricts the one to finite objects (" for understanding is brought about by a kind of proportion, proportione quadam fit, and there is no proportion between the infinite and the finite "), denying that man can know God, for as Vico said later in almost the same words, " if I knew God, I should be God," si scirem Dens essem. Thus he postulated " other sciences, and other modes of understanding, entirely different from this of ours ; more true, more solid, more firm, as a body is than its shadow : and again other principles which we can by no reason apprehend." And not only did he postulate them, but among the human sciences he observed one which as opposed to the natural sciences reached not merely the surfaces of things but almost the things themselves, namely mathematics. " The human soul, situated in the body, cannot attain to the substances of things, but wanders about upon their surfaces by the help of the senses, examining measurements, actions, resemblances and doctrines. But the knowledge of the mind, which creates the fact, is in a sense itself the fact, just as even among human sciences the knowledge of a triangle, that it has three angles equal to two right angles, is practically identical with the truth itself (scientia vero mentis, quae res facit, est quasi ipsa res, veluti etiam in humanis scientia trigoni, quod habeat ires angulos duobus rectis aequales, eadem ferme est ipsi veritati], whence it is clear that there is in us a natural science of a different kind from true science." 2 Here, in the definition of divine knowledge and of the procedure of human knowledge in the case of mathematics, as opposed to that of physical science, is implicit the principle that true knowledge consists in the identity of thought with its object. The idea of the opposition of mathematics to physical science, in the certainty of the one and the uncertainty of the other, persisted in the Neapolitan philosophers and scientists 1 See Gentile's monograph, mentioned above. * These passages of the Tractatus de arcanis aeternitatis, ch. iv., and of the De subtilitate, bks. xi. and xxi. are quoted and commented on by Fiorentino, Bernardino Telesio ossia studi storici su I' idea della natura nel risorgimento italiatto (Florence, Le Monnier, 1872), i. 212-13, does not fail to observe the relations with Vico's criterion. APPENDIX III 289 of Vice's youth, even if they lost sight of the reason of this opposition. Tommaso Cornelio in his " progymnasma " De ratione philosophandi (1661) after reviewing the errors produced by the illusions of sense in physical science, says, " the contemplations of mathematics are not subjected to errors of this kind, dealing as they do with things whose images are not introduced into the mind by the senses ; for the mind can by itself adequately conceive figures and numbers, whose properties and analogies are examined by mathematicians, without aid from sense." * This ought to be emphasised, since it seems highly probable that Vico was stimulated to the establishment of his general theory of knowledge by reflection upon mathematics and the contrast between it and physical science. In fact the Latin speeches, our earliest documents for his studies, though they show the influence of Ficino and a certain amount of Cartesianism, 2 are never dominated by this general criterion. It is only in the last of these speeches, that of 1707, that the distinction between mathematics and natural science begins to appear ; in the next year it is clearly stated in the De ratione studiorum, where it takes the form of a general criterion. " We demonstrate geometry because we make it : if we could demonstrate physical facts, we should be creating them. For the true forms of things exist only in God the greatest and best, and to these the nature of them conforms " (geometrica demon- stramus quid facimus : si physica demonstrare possemus, faceremus. In uno enim Deo Opt. Max. sunt verae rerum formae, quibus earundem est conformata natura). And this theory attained its full development in 1710 in the De anti- quissima. Such are the probable precedents, or as the common but inaccurate metaphor expresses it, " sources " of Vice's theory of knowledge. I do not think that the formation of this theory can have been influenced by the propositions of Geulinx and Malebranche which have been pointed out to me, 3 namely that " no one can make that which he does not know," and that " God alone knows his works, because he foreknows his action." In these propositions the old Thomistic doctrine is 1 Thomae Cornell! consentini Progymnasmata physica (Naples, MDCLXXXVIII.), p. 70 : cf. also p. 64. * See Gentile's monograph, mentioned above. 8 By A. Pastore in a review of my monograph on Vico in the Giorn. star. d. lett. ital. Iviii., cf. pp. 400-402. U ago THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO substantially summarised. Much more tenable would be a connexion or at least a comparison with Spinoza ; we may recall the Spinozistic identification of the ordo et connexio idearum and the ordo et connexio rerum. Another ingenious, but I think, inaccurate view is that " the analytic geometry of Descartes was the introduction of the genetic principle into the study of geometrical objects," so that the principle verum ipsum factum " before being formulated by Vico had been practised by Descartes " ; and Vico in the De antiquissima " adopted the scientific method of Descartes, which he stated as the convertibility of the true with the created," raising it " from a certitude to a criterion." 1 We are dealing here not with practice, but simply with the theory of method : for this method, conceived in its universality, just so far as it is practical has always been practised ; not by Descartes alone, and not only by analytic geometry. We should certainly be better informed as to the precedents of Vico's criterion if we knew more of his studies preparatory to the De antiquissima, and if in general we had more literary evidence about his youth. Perhaps even the precedents I have indicated, which I only called probable, are not quite free from an element of chance ; they may be connexions only imagined by myself and non-existent for Vico's mind, while others not accidental may perhaps be still unknown, or await discovery by a student more fortunate than myself. But it may not be out of place to remark that the search for " precedents " does nothing to explain the new thought that followed them ; much less does it detract from the value of that thought. Such information, though on the one hand it enriches our knowledge of the history of philosophy, on the other hand has absolutely no effect upon the determinate thought under examination. It is valuable in the biography of a philosopher, but valueless for the comprehension of the proper meaning of the new theory, which must be sought essentially in the new problem which it faces and attempts to solve. In the history of philosophy the same principles hold good as in that of literature. Take for example the episode of Argante and Tancred in canto xix. of " Jerusalem De- livered " ; Argante, while taking up his position for the fight with his adversary, turns " as if in doubt " to the " afflicted city," towards Jerusalem attacked by the crusaders ; and 1 A. A. Zottoli, G. B. Vico, in Cultura, Rome, xxx. (1911) pp. 422-3. APPENDIX III 2 gi when Tancred brutally mocks him, asking whether he does this out of fear, he replies : I was but thinking how this city, The immemorial green of Juda's realm, Is falling, vanquished ; whose unhappy fate I have in vain endeavoured to repel. Here the precedents are easily found; Hector parting from Andromache and foreseeing the unhappy fate of Ilion, Priam and all his people (eo-o-erat fjnap, etc., II. vi. 448-9) ; or Aeneas as he gazes upon its downfall (ruit alto a culmine Troia : ... si Pergama dextra, etc., A en. ii. 290-92). And yet the tragic melancholy of Argante is an entirely new creation, and altogether original to Tasso. Ficino, Cardano, Tommaso Cornelio, Scotus and Occam, and any others who have been or shall be added to the list, have or may have anticipated this or that element of Vice's formula : and yet when we turn from their statements to the De antiquissima and the polemics that follow it, and read the definition of science, of true science, as the conversion of the true with the created, it strikes us as an entirely original theory. The fact is that Vico had not to face the same opponents and to solve the same problems that were faced and solved by the schoolmen, nominalists and mystics of the Middle Ages or by the Platonists and naturalists of the Re- naissance, nor yet those of Descartes in his Discours sur la methode ; and the saying that " he alone knows things who creates them " acquires a new value, a new meaning (and this is its proper meaning) from its being used to refute the Cartesian cogito and the doctrine of immediate knowledge. Vico takes an old rusty sword and makes of it at least a glitter- ing and trenchant weapon. For the same reason the phrase is no longer a mere accident or incident, but the starting-point of a special study, the foundation of a new philosophy, and Vico could quite well describe it as something not learnt from another but thought out and established by himself. And when he wants to find some original for it, he invents a history which is really a fiction or a myth ; namely the history of ancient Italian wisdom which used this criterion as its supreme guide and left a trace of it in the Latin language in the synony- mity of the words verum and factum. The refutation of the Cartesian criterion (which De Sanctis thought " complete," the " last word of criticism " 1 ) is the 1 Opp. ed. Ferrari, ii. 166. 292 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO negative aspect of Vice's theory of knowledge. Its positive side, absent in the De antiquissima, is developed as we have said in the Scienza Nuova, where the human knowledge of the mind and of history is raised to the level of divine know- ledge. And since some critics have not only chosen to ignore the obvious difference between these two phases of Vice's thought but have spoken of a too easy transition from the one to the other, it will be well to observe that this transition was for Vico if not entirely conscious at least very slow and very difficult. He must at one time have shared Descartes' and Malebranche's contempt for history ; in the speech of 1701 he even echoed a saying of Descartes against philologists : " You, Philologist, boast of knowing everything about the furniture and clothing of the Romans and of being more intimate with the quarters, tribes and streets of Rome than with those of your own city. Why this pride ? You know no more than did the potter, the cook, the cobbler, the summoner, the auctioneer of Rome." 1 But eleven years later, in the second reply to the Giornale dei letterati, Vico refers to the same phrase with the contrary conclusion, and deplores that " the study of languages is to-day considered profitless, thanks to the authority of Descartes, who says that to know Latin is to know no more than did Cicero's servant-girl." 2 Vico had in the meantime become conscious of the importance of the " probable " knowledge of history and politics. He refers to his former anti-historical Cartesianism in a passage of the De constantia philologiae which has generally escaped notice. Speaking of philology he says : "I, who have all my life delighted in the use of reason more than in memory, seem to myself the more ignorant the more facts I know in philology. Whence Rene Descartes and Malebranche were not far wrong when they said that it was alien to the philo- sopher to work much and for long at philology." But he adds that later he perceived that " these two most notable philosophers ought, it they had been zealous for the common glory of Christendom, not for the private glory of philosophers, so to have pressed forward the study of philology as to see whether philology could be attached to the principles of philo- sophy (ut viderent philosophi an philologiam ad philosophiae principia revocare possent}." 3 The elevation of philology 1 Orazioni latine, ed. Galasso, p. 28. * Opp. ed. Ferrari, ii. 166. 3 Ibid. 232. APPENDIX III 293 to the rank of philosophy, of the knowledge of the world of man to the level of divine knowledge, is the positive aspect of Vice's theory of knowledge. It is this that is developed in the Scienza Nuova, towards which the De antiquissima, with the indication of the historical sciences as against Cartesianism, only prepared the way. Thus of the three points in which I placed the originality and value of Vico's first theory of knowledge, two, namely the criterion of knowledge opposed to that of Descartes and the defence of concrete as opposed to abstract sciences, are not only left intact by the inquiries into their sources which I have just described, but are actually reinforced. There remains the third of my points : the Vician theory of the arbitrary nature of mathematics, the originality of which has also been impugned by arguments which seem to me to have even less foundation than those I have examined above. Do we find the doctrine that the fundamental objects of mathematics, the unit of arithmetic and the point of geometry, are unreal or fictitious, propounded before Vico's time ? Do we find it this is the chief point propounded not as a casual remark or an intuition of a truth, but as a consciously reasoned concept from which legitimate consequences are drawn as to the limitations of mathematics and its inability to furnish real knowledge of mind, nature and history ? All through the Middle Ages the Aristotelian theory of mathematics is continually enunciated. According to this theory mathematics is the most certain of the sciences because the simplest ; it abstracts from all sensible matter, but not from intelligible matter (v\r) vo?//) which exists in sensible objects but not qua Sensible (ev TOIS ato-^rots vrrdpxovcra pr) y aio-OyTa.). 1 According to Cassiodorus it constituted the body of doctrinalis as opposed to naturalis (physical) science and divina. Albertus Magnus followed Aristotle in defining mathematical entities as separable " in imagination," " in thought " but not " in reality " (in phantasmate, secundum rationem, non secundum esse) from the sensible matter to which " they are conjoined by existence " (per esse sunt coniunctae] ; and St. Thomas said that mathematics " though the objects it considers are not separate, yet considers them in so far as they are separate " (etsi sunt non separata ea quae consider at, 1 Metaphys. vi. 1036 a. 294 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO tamen consider at ea in quantum sunt separata] - 1 The arbitrary character of its foundations was never suspected. Dante, when he wished to indicate " the things which not being subject to our power we can only contemplate and not create," enumerated " the objects of mathematics, physical science and divinity " (mathematica, physica et divina). 2 Just as mathematics was not always equally valued in antiquity, so, and much more so, after the Renaissance of learning, it was variously exalted or despised. Giordano Bruno satirised the abuse of it, and said that without physical science "to be able to calculate and measure, to understand geometry and perspective, is but a pastime of ingenious fools," and warned his readers against confusing mathematical " signs " and real " causes " : "a reflected or direct ray, an acute or obtuse angle, a perpendicular, incident or straight line, a greater or smaller arc of a circle, such and such an aspect, are mathematical circumstances and not natural causes. To play with geometry is one thing, to prove by means of nature is another. It is not lines and angles that make the fire more or less hot, but near and far situations, short and long spaces of time." 3 Campanella flatly denied Aristotle's assertion of the superiority of mathematics to physical science, declaring that its alleged purity was really weakness (debilitas), its simplicity was inability to include more things (plura accipere), its universality a contradiction against the nature of true science which is always of particulars (de singularibus) , its demonstrative method by signs not by causes (per signa, non per causas) ; and finally that it is not a science investigated for its own sake and is valueless unless it is applied to physical matters (nisi applicentur physicis rebus).* Bacon is of the same opinion, that mathematics taken by itself is useless, and is useful only as an " auxiliary science," a " great appendix " to the physical sciences. 5 These definitions and restrictions, and others like them, might have yielded as a conclusion the entirely instrumental 1 The passages of Cassiodorus, Albertus and St. Thomas may be found collected in Marietan, Probleme de la classification des sciences d'Aristote d saint Thomas (Paris, 1901), see pp. 80, 168-9, 182-3, 185-6. 1 De monarchia, i. c. 3. 8 La Cena delle ceneri (1584) in his Opere italiane, ed. Gentile, i. 62, 107-8. 4 Logicorum libri tres, bk. ii. art. 7-10 (in the Philosophiae rationales pars secunda, Parish's, 1637, pp. 433-7). s De dignilate et augmentis scientiarum, bk. iii. c. 6. APPENDIX III 295 and practical character of mathematical science : but the conclusion was not drawn, so far as I know ; and Bacon himself considered mathematics as in itself too exclusively and uselessly theoretical. " For since," he goes on in the passage above quoted, " it is a fact of human nature, no doubt to the great detriment of science, that it rejoices in the open plains of generalities, so to speak, rather than in the forests and closes of the particular, no discovery is more pleasant and gratifying than mathematics wherewith to sate this love of wandering and of meditation." The " creation " of mathematics spoken of by Ficino, Cardano and others signified a mental production entirely free from material presuppositions, and for that reason not less true but true in a higher sense. It is almost the same sense as that found in Descartes and his followers. Locke asserts the reality of mathematical truths, though he admits that there are in nature no figures corresponding to the archetypes existing in the mind of the geometrician ; 1 and Leibnitz, commenting on this passage, says that " the ideas of justice and temperance are no more our own invention than those of the circle and the square." 2 Tommaso Cornelio, whom we have quoted on the contrast between physical science and mathematics, also believed that mathematics rested on " certain notions and understandings which nature has put into the minds of men as foundations of science." 3 Another kind of " creation," and one which seems to have more connexion with Vice's " finger e," is discussed in a passage of Aristotle's Metaphysics which has had a good deal of influence. " We find also," Aristotle says, " geometrical figures by actualising them (Ivepyefy) , because they are found by being divided : if they were divided, they would be obvious, but in reality they exist potentially. Why has the triangle two right angles ? Because the angles round one point are equal to two right angles. If then we construct the angle along one side, it would become plain to any one looking at it. Why is the angle in the semicircle equal to a right angle ? Because if there are three equal lines, two in the base and one drawn perpendicular to it, it is plain to any one who sees it and knows that. Whence it is evident that we discover things that exist potentially by reducing them to actuality. 1 Essay, iv. ch. 4, 6. z Nouveaux essais, iv. ch. 4. 3 Op. cit. p. 64. 2g6 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO This is because the actuality is understanding, and the potenti- ality proceeds from the actuality ; so we know by making (KOI 810. TOVTO TTOIOWTCS yiyvoxTKowtv)." But these observa- tions belong to the explanations given by Aristotle in this passage of the conceptions of potentiality and actuality ; they are not at all opposed to his theory of mathematics as studying the intelligible matter which subsists in sensible matter, and they only explain the difference between potential and actual truth. In the same way we sometimes find in later philosophers the assertion that mathematical truths are demonstrated and problems resolved " by making them." Thus Sarpi writes in the passage mentioned above : "in mathematics, he who constructs knows because he makes, and he who analyses learns because he seeks how the thing is made. The mode of composition then belongs to the inventive faculty and that of analysis to the discursive : the former is that of problems, the latter of theorems ; the latter are demonstrated by analysis, the former by composition." 2 It has also been recently asserted that the Vician philo- sophy of mathematics reappears bodily in Galileo and his school ; 3 an astounding fact when baldly stated, since even 1 Metaphys. viii. 1051 b. I append the passage: efykr/cerat 5 ical ra Siaypd/j./j.aTa. tvepyelq. ' SicupovvTes y&p eupiffKovffiv. l S' ty Si-yprjutva a.vepa. &i/ fy ' vvv 5' tvvirdpxei Svvd.fj.et. dt& rl Svo opdal rb rplyiavov ; Sri al irepl IJ.LO.V ffTiyfj.T}v yuviai tvcu Svo 6p6ais. el ofo avrjicro r) vapa. rr^v Tr\evpav ISovTt &v fjv ei)0i)s Sij\ov. Sid. rl T\ iv 7i/MKVK\l(p 6p6)) Ka66\ov ; dibri ta.v tcrai rpets, tf re jSciats 860 xa.1 7} K ptffov tiriffra-Qelaa. 6p0-/i, lS6vn SrjXor r<$ tKtivo eiddri. S). 8 Scritti filosofici, ed. Papini, p. 7. In a passage of the Arte di ben pensare (Scritti, p. 72) Sarpi returns to mathematics and, while agreeing that it is less uncertain than the other sciences because in it " the mode and the proposition " are more clearly shown, goes on to say " it is also made in the same manner (as the others) : it is not free from the sus- picion of being not quite true." But clearly he is here speaking of the application of mathematics, of the act of counting and measuring physical objects : " this alone is certain : I count and reason in this manner, just as in eating honey I feel the effect which I call sweet ; where I may be in error is the question whether this effect comes from the object or from the disposition of my taste : and there is no science where there are number and measurement, for all we can know is that we measure or count like this, and that the measure comes in or is used as many times as the thing seems to be equal to one such part and that equality is a concept of ours by which we express what then seems to happen." 3 G. Papini, La Novitd di Vico in L' Anima, Florence, September 1911, pp. 264-6 ; cf. on this article, Critica, x. 56-8. APPENDIX III 297 though Vico opposes and prefers the great Pisan to Descartes for the moderate use he makes of mathematics in physical science, it is certain that for Galileo as for Leonardo da Vinci mathematics had an objective validity, and the book of nature is written in mathematical characters and geometrical figures. In any case, the passage of Galileo which has been quoted in this reference, on the intensive identity of human with divine knowledge, has nothing to do with the present question, and another passage which asserts that the explanations of terms are free, and it is in the power of every workman to circum- scribe and define in his own way the things he is dealing with, without ever being led by this into error or falsehood, and that for instance one may call the bow the stern and the stern the bow, says nothing but a platitude hardly worth saying except by way of adorning a page of controversial rhetoric. 1 In controversy one is often obliged to insist upon platitudes, and the controversy upon which I am now engaged itself presents too many examples. A passage from the Lezioni accademiche of Galileo's pupil Evangelista Torricelli in which he speaks of the difference between physical and mathematical definitions seems at first sight more convincing. But the critic who has called attention to this passage 2 says too much when he asserts that "it is beyond doubt that Vico had read it," since it is unquestion- able that Vico had not read it. The Lezioni accademiche were published first posthumously in 1715 3 and Vice's theory of mathematics is expounded in the De ratione in 1708 and the De antiquissima, 1710. This, it is true, is of secondary import- ance, for Vico may have known Torricelli's doctrine through indirect channels, through other books or even orally through some Neapolitan friend or pupil of Torricelli ; in any case, if the latter's theory though unknown to Vico was really identical with his own, the similarity of ideas between the two would be of the greatest interest. Unfortunately the 1 Papini probably owes this passage to a small anthology of Galileo by Favaro (Florence, Barbera, 1910), p. 303, which refers to the national edition of his Opere, iv. 631 ; here the passage occurs in the Consider azioni sopra il discorso di Colombo (1615). * G. Papini, loc. cit. pp. 265-6. 8 Lezioni accademiche di Evangelista Torricelli, mathematico e filosofo del serenissimo Ferdinando II Granduca di Toscana, lettore delle mate- matiche nello studio di Firenze e accademico della Crusca (Florence, MDCCXV.). The editor's preface shows that the work had not been previously published. 2g8 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO critic has been too hasty, as it seems to me, even in his study and interpretation of the pages of Torricelli. In the passage in question, a lecture Delia leggerezza, read to the Accademia della Crusca, Torricelli controverts, as based on mere appearances and not confirmed by facts and reasoning, Aristotle's definition in the De coelo : " heavy is that which has a natural property of going towards the centre." He remarks upon this : " The definitions of Physics differ from those of Mathematics in that the former are obliged to adapt and adjust themselves to the object defined, while the latter mathematical definitions are free and can be formed at the will of the geometrician who is defining. The reason is perfectly plain : the things defined in Physics do not come into being with the definition, they exist already by themselves and are found in nature previously. But the things defined by geometry, that is by the science of abstraction, have no existence in the universe of the world other than that which definition gives to them in the universe of intelligence. Thus whatever objects of Mathematics are defined, the same objects will come into existence simultaneously with the definition." 1 The arbitrary character of mathematics seems here to be clearly stated. But let us reserve our judgment and read on. " If I were to say, the circle is a plane figure with four equal sides and four right angles, this is not at all a false definition ; but for the rest of my book I should have to mean, whenever I spoke of a circle, a certain figure which others have called a square. But if a man should say in Physics, ' the horse is a rational animal/ should we not be justified in calling him the horse ? We must first look very carefully to see whether the horse is a rational animal or not and then define it as it is, in order that the physical definition may conform to the object and not be counted defective." Here we see that what appeared to be a profound thought has turned out to be a platitude ; it is indifferent whether we call the bow the stern or the stern the bow, said Galileo, or, says Torricelli in his turn, whether we call a square a circle or a circle a square ; while it does not seem to him an indifferent matter whether we call a horse a rational animal. But even this does not prevent him from admitting later some degree of arbitrariness in physical terminology, when he says, " since then it is not demonstrated that the intrinsic principle of downward motion 1 Op, cit. pp. 31-2. APPENDIX III 299 exists upon the earth, I will accept this definition, if the tests will allow me, as the simple imposition of a name, and, replacing the verb ' to be ' by the verb ' to be called,' I will adapt the definition to my own requirements thus : That is called heavy which descends to the centre. Whenever any one says, the earth is heavy, I will agree, but always with the interpretation that the word ' heavy ' only signifies descend- ing in a lighter medium." l It seems to me then that the difference which he begins by laying down between mathematics and physical science is considerably obscured in the sequel. And indeed how could Torricelli have seriously thought that the foundation of mathematics was a " fiction," when among his lectures one heard the title " in Praise of Mathematics " ? In this lecture he says, quite in the Galilean style : " That to read the great Book of the Universe, the book on whose pages may be found the true philosophy written by God, mathematics are indis- pensable, will be seen by any one who with noble thoughts aspires to the science of the integral parts and greatest members of this huge body we call the World. The one alphabet, the only characters with which we can read the great manu- script of the divine philosophy in the book of the Universe are those poor figures you see in the text-books of geometry." 2 The most we can see in these statements is a vague and hazy presentment of the profound difference between physical truths and the so-called truths of mathematics. In conclusion, until for the third of my three points we can discover much more obvious " sources " than those sug- gested up till now, I shall see no cause to modify my verdict upon the originality of Vico's conception of mathematics. This originality is further proved by the important conse- quences drawn by Vico from his theory of mathematics for his philosophical method ; for every one knows that a thought taken over bodily from another remains inert and sterile, while an original idea is always active and fruitful. Note. I have selected, of the various criticisms directed against my book on Vico, that concerning his " originality," because this gave me opportunities for researches and explana- tions of some value. But my book has been subjected to two general criticisms which do not lend themselves to the same treatment. It has been said that in my exposition of Vico's philosophy 1 Op. cit. p. 33. * Op, cit. p. 66. 300 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO I have followed my personal philosophical convictions : and sermons and epistles have been showered upon me preaching the duty of casting off prejudices, etc., and narrating the history of philosophy in an objective manner, etc. But I should like my critics to believe that my " convictions " cannot have, to my mind, the character of prejudices, but precisely that of liberation from prejudice, which is what they demand : that detachment and purity of understanding which is necessary for the comprehension of historical facts, and is not, as some fancy, a primeval innocence, but the fruit of laborious cultivation. To grasp Vico historically in his strict reality I have been compelled to undergo a catharsis of prejudices, consisting in my case of the philosophy to which my own efforts had led me. My ideas may be untrue, but that is another question ; and that means that if their falsity is proved I am bound to clear and purify my mind by means of less false ideas ; but these in their turn must always be ideas and become convictions. In point of abstract method, no objection at all can be made to any one who looks at Vico through the spectacles of scholasticism if he thinks they make his sight more distinct and penetrating ; the most we can do is to try and persuade him that there are better spectacles on the market. But we certainly have the right to smile if this same scholastic goes on to warn us that " in studying a philosopher, in investigating and reconstructing his thought, it is absolutely necessary to bring to the task a mind free from preconceptions and hostile to prejudices " ; while all the time he is trying to pass off his scholastic opinions and religious beliefs under the banner of objectivity, sincerity and freedom from prejudice. " Philosophers " I have seen this assertion too " are unfitted for writing the history of philosophy, because they have ideas of their own." And who is fitted for it ? People who are not philosophers ? Does not Vico teach us precisely this, that where he who makes the facts (as the philosopher makes philosophy) himself narrates them, there history reaches its highest certainty ? The other criticism concerns the idealistic interpretation which I have given to some of Vico's doctrines. It is con- tended that Vico was a Catholic, and that fact is supposed to prove that he could not have entertained the ideas which I find in his works. But that Vico professed himself an entirely orthodox Catholic, and that he clung to Catholicism with all the strength and zeal of his mind I have myself said again and APPENDIX III 301 again : I have even defended him against the accusations or praises dealt out to him by other critics for deceit or prudence in his attitude to the Church. But is it really so amazing, so unheard-of a thing, to find heterodox ideas in an orthodox writer ? Are they not found in the Early Fathers and the Schoolmen, in mediaeval and modern theologians and mystics ? To take an example of the many that occur, an example for a double reason above suspicion : Nicholas of Cusa was a Catholic and in fact a Cardinal of Holy Church, and in his lifetime the intimate friend of three popes. And yet the Catholic historian of Scholasticism, De Wulf, wrote of him " Le Cardinal catholique est-il done pantheiste ? ... II s'en defend vivement dans son Apologia doctae ignorantiae, mais on peut dire de lui comme d'Eckehart : ' il fait flechir la logique au profit de son orthodoxie et retient de force les consequences de ses premisses'" (Hist, de la philos. m&dievale, p. 389). If this happened to the Cardinal of Cusa or the Franciscan Master Eckehart, could it not happen to the Catholic Vico ? M. de Wulf the Catholic historian is allowed to use this admirable method of criticism and to distinguish intention and action, will and logic. Why should it be denied to me ? But enough. APPENDIX IV BIBLIOGRAPHICAL NOTES I. WORKS OF VICO Vice's earliest extant work is the poem entitled Feelings of one in despair, composed certainly before the author's twenty- fifth year at Vatolla in the Cilento, where he lived for nine years as a tutor at the Casa Rocca, printed by Gonzatti at Venice and dated 1693. This was followed by verses and speeches of a merely rhetorical character. The philosophical characteristics are accentuated in the six speeches read by Vico at Naples University, 1699-1707, not printed by him, and rediscovered and published by Galasso (Naples, Morano, 1869). In these speeches, though some tendencies of his thought show themselves, his philo- sophy is still the traditional system, not without some traces of Cartesianism. Vico's opposition to Cartesianism and formal adoption of his own views are announced for the first time in the inaugural lecture for the year 1708, entitled De nostri temporis studiorum ratione, published next year by the author himself (Naples, Mosca, 1709). A long digression ( 12-15) contains a sketch of the history of Roman juris- prudence, his first essay in the historical studies which led later on to the Diritto universale and the two Scienze Nuove. The following year appeared Vico's first constructively philosophical and historical work : the De antiquissima Italorum sapientia ex linguae Latinae originibus eruenda, or rather the first book of that work (Naples, Mosca, 1710) : the other two were never written, but we can form an idea of their intended contents from what is said in the Autobiography. Beside Vico's theory of knowledge in its first form and the metaphysic which he always maintained in its entirety, the De antiquissima contained an attempt to reconstitute for the 302 APPENDIX IV 303 first time primitive wisdom, or rather one particular instance of primitive wisdom, that of Italy ; but as we have already said in the text of our exposition the attempt was founded on the idea that this wisdom was philosophical, and conducted according to the criterion of the transmission of culture which Vico subsequently rejected, as he rejected the traditional opinion, accepted in this work, of the Athenian origin of the laws of the Twelve Tables. We must accordingly refuse to accept Cantoni's verdict (G. B. Vico, p. 38) that the De anti- quissima forms " a strange anomaly in the history of Vico's thought, being contrary to his whole scientific life, his tendencies, his principles, and the method which later he almost universally applies in his historical researches." The reverse is in fact the case : namely that this work is the starting-point of his future developments and that without it we cannot understand his later thought. The criticisms directed by the Giornale del letterati d' Italia (1711, vols. v. and viii.) against the historical and some of the philosophical positions of the De antiquissima evoked Vico's two important Replies (Naples, Mosca, 1711 and 1712) in which he defends and elucidates his views on the theory of knowledge and metaphysics. The part of the De antiquissima that never went to the press included his meditations on the philosophy of medicine, from which he extracted an essay De aequilibrio corporis animantis : this he thought of publish- ing many years later, but it is now lost. Of these studies, therefore, as of his speculations upon physics intended to constitute a Liber physicus, we know only what he tells us in his autobiography. Setting aside his rhetorical and occasional compositions, the largest of which is the De rebus gestis Antonii Caraphaei (Naples, Mosca, 1716), the continuation of his thought, now concentrating upon moral and historical problems, is sketched in a lecture of 1719 (of which an abstract is included in the autobiography) and developed first in 1720 in a printed prospectus of four double -columned pages known as the Sinopsi del diritto universale, and secondly in the vast treatise, De universi iuris uno principio et fine uno liber unus (Naples, Mosca, 1720) completed next year with the Liber alter qui est de constantia iurisprudentis, and supplemented in 1722 by the Notae in duos libros, etc. (same publisher) ; a work which is usually referred to briefly following the author's example as the Diritto universale. 304 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO This book, according to Cantoni (op. cit. p. 243) represents the culminating point of Vice's scientific activity. The verdict is no more acceptable than that quoted above. The author (Opp. v. 10-11) rejected the Diritto universale because he seemed to find persisting there the prejudice and the pretence of " descending " from the thought of Plato and other philosophers to that of primitive man, a tendency which led him astray " in certain matters " ; but he also calls it, and rightly, a " sketch for the Scienza Nuova," which it really is. The ideas about poetry are here still confused, Homer is not yet a myth, the mythological canons have less unity than they acquired later, the theory of reflux is only faintly adumbrated, and in a word both the ideal eternal history and the theory of knowledge upon which it is founded are as yet immature. The book is all contained, under a new form, in his later work, except the general ethical and juridical philosophy, which is not highly original, and some historical developments which are merely alluded to in the later writings. The MS. of an Italian work in two books, in which Vico expounded his doctrines " by a negative method," has been lost. But he expounds them positively and at less length in the Principl di una Scienza Nuova intorno alia comune natura delle nazioni, per la quale si ritrovano i principl di altro sistema del diritto naturale delle genii (Naples, Mosca, 1725) which is known by the title (again authorised by himself) of First Scienza Nuova. In 1725, the year of the publication of the first Scienza Nuova, Vico related the history of his studies : Vita di G. B. Vico scritta da se medesimo, which was inserted in Calogera's Raccolta di opuscoli scientifici e filologici (Venice, Zani, 1728, vol. i. pp. 145-256). Among the minor writings of this period may be noted the two speeches on the death of the Countess of Althann (1724) and the Marchesana della Petrella Angiola Cimini (1727) ; the little volume Vici vindiciae (Naples, Mosca, 1729) containing a personal defence (together with an important theoretical digression on " laughter ") against a malevolent notice inserted in the Ada Lipsiensia of 1727, about the Scienza Nuova', and some fine letters to Giacchi, Degli Angioli, Esperti, De Vitry and Solla on the contrast between his works and the state of learning at this time. To the first Scienza Nuova Vico thought of adding a long series of Annotations in a reprint of it which he was preparing at Venice between 1728 and 1730. But since this scheme was APPENDIX IV jos not carried out, and on the other hand he was dissatisfied with the book not so much on account of the matter, he says, as on account of the arrangement (Opp. vi. u), he resolved to publish an entirely new exposition of his doctrines in the Cinque libri de' principl di una Scienza Nuova d' intorno alia comune natura delle nazioni, in questa seconda impressione con piu propia maniera condotti e di motto accresciuti (Naples, Mosca, 1730), which form the second Scienza Nuova. While Cantoni (op. cit. pp. 238-9) considers this work the dotage of Vice's thought, it is really the necessary result and perfect form in which his previous attempts issued ; it is the book which with the De antiquissima and the autobiography supplies all the necessary material for a knowledge of his thought. In the Diritto universale and the first Scienza Nuova we can find a few details omitted in the later work ; but those treatises display the same doctrines as the second Scienza Nuova in a manner much less profound and solid, and certainly less characteristic of the author. The detailed comparison of these three works has been made with great care in the short summaries added by Ferrari to his editions of the first and second Scienza Nuova. Even the 1730 edition was increased by the author from 1731 to about 1740 by many variations and additions, though without changing the arrangement or the substance of the work. These additions were taken for the most part incor- porated in a final MS. on which was based the edition of the Principl di una Scienza Nuova intorno alia comune natura delle nazioni, published the very year of Vico's death (Naples, Stamperia Muziana, 1744). In the National Library at Naples are preserved the autographs both of this MS. and of two earlier MSS. of additions and corrections, unpublished fragments of which have been published by Giordano (Naples, 1818) and Del Giudice (Naples, 1862). All the unpublished fragments and variants have been now collected by Nicolini in the edition hereafter mentioned (p. 307). After the second Scienza Nuova Vico wrote hardly anything. We may note among these few productions the speech De mente heroica (Naples, 1732), the addition to the autobiography (1731), and a few sonnets in which, composed though they were, like almost all his verses, by request and as occasional pieces, a personal note may at times be felt. 306 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO II. REPRINTS, COLLECTIONS, AND TRANSLATIONS Two collections of Vice's minor works have been made, one of the Latinae orationes alone by F. Daniele (Naples, 1766), and the other, rich in unpublished matter, of the Italian and Latin Opuscoli, in four volumes, by C. A. de Rosa, Marchese di Villarosa (Naples, 1818-23). Vice's son Gennaro furnished Villarosa with all his father's extant papers ; and these price- less autographs are still preserved at Naples in the house of my intimate friends the engineers Tommaso and Vincenzo de Rosa di Villarosa. The first and only edition as it may be called, since all others are merely reproductions of it, of Vice's complete works is that of Giuseppe Ferrari, in six volumes (Milan, Classici italiani, 1835-37) reprinted with improvements in 1852-54. The Opere edited by N. M. Corcia (Naples, Tipografia della Sibilla, 1834, 2 vols.) are only a selection ; and the Opere edited by F. Predari (Milan, Bravetta, 1835) never went beyond one ill-arranged volume. The edition which followed that of Ferrari (Naples, lovane, 1840-41) is also incomplete and ill- arranged, but contains some small unpublished works. The Neapolitan edition of the Opere in eight volumes (i.-ii. 1858, iii. 1861, iv. 1859, v.-vi. 1860, vii. 1865, viii. 1869, the earlier volumes at the Tipografia dei Classici Italiani, the others by the publisher Morano) is based mainly upon Ferrari, but somewhat incorrect ; it is however the most complete of all, as containing the Sinopsi, the Istituzioni oratorie, and the Orazioni latine published by Galasso subsequently to Ferrari's edition, as well as the Italian translations by the advocate F. S. Pomodoro of the De ratione, De antiquissima, and Diritto universale. Unpublished or scattered works of Vico not appearing in any of these editions have been collected by Croce, Bibliografia vichiana and Prime and Secondo supplement : see below. A critical edition of the second Scienza Nuova is now being printed in the CoUezione dei dassici detta filosofia modernadiretta da B. Croce e G. Gentile (Bari, Laterza) : the first volume is to be published at the same time as the present monograph. 1 It is being edited by Dr. Fausto Nicolini, who by using the autograph MSS. has enriched Ferrari's edition, which contained the fragments suppressed in the 1730 issue, by all the frag- 1 By now (1913) the second volume has appeared : the third will appear next year. APPENDIX IV 307 ments of the intermediate redactions down to the 1744 text ; Vice's quotations have been checked and references given in notes to the passages of classical and modern authors to which he refers ; and, finally, in deference to a wish often expressed by men of letters as authoritative as Tommaseo, the orthography and punctuation have been corrected. Ferrari's valuable summaries are reproduced, with a few emendations, in Nicolini's edition. Nicolini is also at work on a new edition of the complete works, to form part of Laterza's collection of Scrittori d' Italia, the scheme and detailed index of which may be seen in Croce, Secondo supplemento alia Bibliografia vichiana (pp. 102-13). The fifth volume of this collection, edited by Croce, is also to appear with the present monograph. Vico's Latin works have frequently been translated into Italian : the De antiquissima anonymously, perhaps by Vincenzo Monti (1816), and later by Sarchi (1870) : the first book of the Diritto naturale by Corcia (1839), Amante (1841), Giani (1855), and Sarchi (1866), and both books, with the De ratione and De antiquissima, as we have said, by Pomodoro. The second Scienza Nuova was translated into French, much abbreviated, by Jules Michelet, under the title of Principes de la philosophic de I'histoire (Paris, Renouard, 1827) and frequently reprinted ; and again, in full, by an anonymous translator described as " 1'Auteur de 1'Essai sur la formation du dogme catholique," in reality Cristina Trivulzi, Princess of Belgioioso (Paris, Renouard, 1844). Michelet also translated some of Vico's minor works, published with the Scienza Nuova in the edition of the (Euvres choisies de Vico (Paris, Hachette, 1835) an d frequently reprinted. In German there is a translation in full with good notes by W. E. Weber (Leipzig, Brockhaus, 1844). There is also a summary of the first book of the Diritto universale by K. H. Mtiller, forming the first volume of a series of Vico's Kleine Schriften which was not continued (Neubrandenburg, Briinslow, 1854). The only English translation is a version of the book on Homer based on Michelet's French translation and inserted in H. Nelson Coleridge's Introduction to the Study of the Greek Classic Poets (3rd ed., London, Murray, 1846). 308 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO III. BIOGRAPHY OF VICO By way of supplement to the autobiography, Villarosa collected information on Vice's last years and published it as a continuation of that work in his edition of the Opuscoli, vol. i. (1818). This supplement, together with everything else that has been published in the way of documents or contemporary records of Vico, may be found collected in the fifth volume of the new edition of his works above mentioned (p. 307) and entitled : L' Autobiografia, U carteggio e le poesie varie, ed. B. Croce (Ban, Laterza, 1911). IV. LITERATURE ON VICO There are only three monographs on Vico which may still be read with profit (that of Ferrari, La Mente dd Vico, admirable editor though he was, may best be consigned to merciful oblivion) ; they are as follows : 1. Carlo Cantoni, G.B.V., studl critici e comparativi (Turin, Civelli, 1867). Cf. for certain reservations A. Faggi, in Rivista fUosofica italiana, vol. ix., 1906, pp. 593-606, and G. Gentile, in Critica, vol. v., 1907, pp. 197-201. 2. Karl Werner, G.B.V. als Philosoph und gelehrter Forscher, (Wien, Braumuller, 1881). Cf. Zeitschrift fur PhUosophie und philos. Kritik, vol. Ixxii., 1883, pp. 139-52. 3. Robert Flint, Vico (Edinburgh and London, 1884). Italian translation by F. Finocchietti, Florence, 1888). See what has been said of these above, p. 277. Of short and general studies the following are the best : 1. B. Spaventa, G.B.V. , in Prolusione e introduzione alle lezioni di filosofia (Naples, Vitale, 1862), pp. 83-102, reprinted under the title La Filosofia italiana nelle sue rdazioni con la filosofia europea, ed. G. Gentile (Ban, Laterza, 1908) ; see pp. 111-35 f this reprint. 2. F. de Sanctis, Storia della letteratura italiana (Naples, Morano, 1870 ; new ed. Croce, Ban, Laterza, 1912), vol. ii. pp. 342-62. 3. F. Florentine, Lettere sopra la " Scienza Nuova" (Florence, 1865), reprinted in Scritti varl (Naples, Morano, 1871), pp. 161-211. 4. E. Cauer, G.B.V. und seine Stellung zur modernen Wissen- schaft (in Deutsches Museum, edited by R. Prutz and W. Woelfsohn, Leipzig, Hinrichs, year i, 1851, vol. i. pp. 249-65). APPENDIX IV 309 For special points the following may be consulted : 1. F. A. Wolf, G.B.V. iiber den Homer (in Museum der Alterthumswissenschaft, Berlin, 1807, vol. ii. pp. 555-70). 2. J. K. von Orelli, Vico und Niebuhr (in Schweizerisches Museum, Aarau, vol. i. p. 184 sqq.). 3. C. lannelli, Sulla natura e necessita delta scienza delle cose e delle storie umane (Naples, Porcelli, 1818, and Milan, Fontana, 1832). 4. Emerico Amari, Critica di una scienza della legislazione comparata (Genoa, Istituto dei Sordomuti, 1857). Cf. on this book K. Werner, E.A. in seinem Verhdltnis zu G.B.V. (Wien, 1880 ; from the Sitzungsberichte der phil.-histor. Klasse of the Imperial Academy of Vienna, vol. xcvi.). 5. F. Acri, Teoria del V. intorno alle idee o paradimmi (in Abbozzo diuna teoria delle idee, Palermo, Lao, 1870 ; and with modifications in the volume Videbimus in aenigmate, Bologna, Mareggiani, 1907, pp. 287-313). 6. E. Cenni, an exposition of Vice's metaphysic in the volume entitled Consider azioni sulT Italia ad occasione del traforo del Gottardo (Florence, Cellini, 1884), pp. 109-82. 7. E. Bouvy, De V. Cartesii adversaria (Paris, Hachette, 1889). 8. E. Bouvy, La Critique dantesque au dix-huitieme siecle : Dante et V. (Paris, Leroux, 1892). 9. G. Sorel, tude sur V. (in Devenir social, Paris, vol. ii., 1896) and see esp. the same author's Le Systeme historique de Renan (Paris, Jacques, 1905), passim. 10. B. Labanca, G.B.V. e i suoi critici cattolici (Naples, Pierro, 1898). 11. G. Rossi, V. nei tempi di V. (in Rivista filosofica italiana, vol. ii., 1899, pp. 294-319, and part 2, ibid. vol. x., 1907, pp. 602-34). 12. A. Olivieri, Gli studi omerici di G.B.V. (in Atti della r. Accad. di archeologia, lettere e belle arti, Naples, vol. xxiv., 1905). 13. C. Trabalza, Storia della grammatica italiana (Milan, Hoepli, 1908), ch. xii. pp. 364-76. 14. P. Garofalo, Acrisia vichiana nella " Scienza Nuova," critical annotations (Naples, Detken, 1909) : cf. F. Nicolini, in Critica, vol. viii., 1910, pp. 374-8. 15. G. Maugain, tude sur Involution intellectuelle de I'ltalie de 1657 a 1750 environ (Paris, Hachette, 1909). 16. On my own previous work upon Vico, it should be 3io THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO observed that the materials of the chapter on Vico's aesthetic doctrine in Croce, Estetica (4th ed., Ban, Laterza, 1912, ch. v. pp. 255-71), have been worked up in a more mature form into ch. iv. of the present monograph : the essay on Vico's Ethics (in Critica, vi., 1908, pp. 71-7) has been absorbed into chaps, vi.-viii. ; and similarly that on the Lineamenti di storia letteraria in G.B.V. (ibid. pp. 460-80) into chaps, xvi. and xviii. ; my other scattered writings have in general been only of technical, philological, or polemical interest. In the mis- cellaneous Studi in onore di F. Torraca (Naples, Perrella, 1912) is a short essay by me upon La Dottrina del riso e dell' ironia in G.B.V. The whole of the literature on Vico, together with extracts from rare books, minor works, and articles, and with unpublished documents together with fully detailed notes on the editions of Vico's writings, is collected in the three works to which I have frequently referred, namely : B. Croce, Bibliografia vichiana contenente nella parte I il catalogo delle edizioni, traduzioni e manoscritti delle opere di G.B.V. ; nella parte II, quello dei giudizl e lavori storico-critici intorno al V. sino al- l' anno corrente ; nella parte III letter e inedite del V. e al V., documenti e altri scritti inediti o rari, e varie appendici illus- trative (Naples, 1904 : reprinted from Atti dell' Accademia pontaniana, Naples, vol. xxxiv. ; pp. xii. 127, 4to) ; Supplemento alia Bibliografia vichiana (Naples, 1907 ; reprinted from Atti, vol. xxxvii. pp. 34, 4to) and Secondo Supplemento (Naples, 1911, reprinted from Atti, vol. xl. pp. 116, 4to) ; the whole collected in one volume under the title : Bibliografia vichiana ; raccolta di tre memorie presentate all' Accademia pontaniana di Napoli nel 1903, 1907 e 1910, with an appendix by F. Nicolini (Bari, Laterza, 1911). 1 1 Since the publication of the Italian edition of this work in 1911 several studies of Vico have appeared. The following may be noted : G. Gentile, La Prima Fase della filosofia di G.B.V., Naples, 1912 (in the Studi in onore di F. Torraca), quoted supra, p. 287 n. F. Pessico, Ripensando la Scienza Nuova (in Rassegna nazionale, November i, 1912). G. Folchieri, 77 Carattere dell' opera di G.B.V. (Perugia, Bartelli,i9i3). F. Nicolini, Spigolature vichiane ; sul testo delle Vindiciae (in Scritti varl in onore di R. Renier, Turin, 1912). B. Croce, II V. e la critica omerica (in the volume Saggio sullo Hegel e altri scritti di storia della filosofia, Bari, Laterza, 1913, pp. 269-282). Cf. also W. Windelband, Die Geschichte der neueren Philosophie, 5th ed. Leipzig, 1911, vol. i. pp. 597-8. NOTE PASSAGES OF VICO'S WORKS TO WHICH ESPECIAL REFERENCE IS MADE IN THE COURSE OF THE EXPOSITION CHAPTER I. For this chapter see the De ratione, the De antiquissima, the two Riposte al Giornale dei letterati, and the first part of the Autobiography. For the note (p. 8) on the spirit of the Reformation, see Opere, ed. Ferrari, 2nd ed. vi. 5. Chapter II.Opp. v. 147, 239, 136-7, 51 ; iv. 33 ; v. 50-51, 147 ; iv. 33, 63-4 ; iii. 200 ; v. 17, 97, 103, 149-50, 174 ; iv. 20, 248 ; iii. 232 ; iv. 20 ; v. 562. Chapter III. Opp. v. 147, 162, 99, 42 ; iv. 73, 81, 174-5 ; v. 91, 145. Chapter IV. Opp. v. 141, 166, 42 ; iii. 232, 272-3 ; iv. 20 ; v. 175, 259, 107 ; iv. 22, 33 ; v. 180, 441, 209-10, 201 ; iv. 205, 206 ; iii. 274, 275 ; v. 230, 211, 169 ; iv. 201, 233, 365 ; v. 55, 82, 187, 196-7 ; iv. 224 ; v. no, 112, 168, 212, 237, 217, 379, 440, 212, 238 ; iv. 24. Chapter V. Opp. v. 80-81; iv. 20, 21, 74 ; v. 169; v. 161-7; iv. 191-3, 168-9 ; v. 18 ; iv. 169, 50-51 ; iii. 26, no ; ii. 96-7 ; v. 166, 43, 169, 420-21, 387, 192, 379, 108. Chapter VL Opp. v. 437, 18 ; iv. 165 ; v. 109, no, 534 ; vi. 15 ; v. 532 ; iii. 12 ; v. 106 ; v. 49 ; iv. 343 ; vi. 127 ; iii. 30 ; iv. 87 ; iii. 57 ; v. 490 ; iv. 40-41 ; iii. 30 ; iv. 334 ; iv. 35 ; iii. 12, 30 ; v. 97 ; iii. 234-40 ; iv. 49 ; v. 98, 131 ; iv. 42-3. Chapter VII. Opp. v. 142, 168, 173, 248, 250 ; iv. 291 ; v. 106, 242, 142, 137-8, 290 ; iv. 175-7, 42-3 ; v. 153, 241 ; iv. 9 ; v. 96, 242, 574 ; iv. 332 ; v. 97 ; iv. 176-7, 43 ; v. 176, 131. Chapter VIII. Opp. iv. 309-13 ; v. 185 ; iii. 55, 28, 43-4 ; v. 97 ; iii. 47-52, 52-3 ; iv. 14, 45, 57 ; v. 148, 133 ; iii. 53, 85-7. 58 ; v. 240-41, 484 ; iv. 170-71, 180, 351. Chapter IX. Opp. v. 462-3, 544; iv. 43-4, 46; iii. 94, i9 2 -3.85, 87; iv. 18,335, 15; v. 129-30,563,564; iii. 55; v. 571 ; iv. 245, 13, 159-60 ; Scritti inediti, Del Giudice, pp. 11-14. 3" 312 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO Chapter X. Opp. v. 13-14, 128, 143-4, 172, 570 ; iii. 22 ; iv. 42 ; v. 97, 572, 45-6, 463. Chapter XI. Opp. iv. 62 ; v. 116, 183, 558, 559, 561, 570 ; vi. 127 ; iii. 95 ; iv. 249. Chapter XII. Same sources as for Ch. I. and also vi. 105-6 ; v. 524-5. Chapter XIII. Opp. v. 60 ; iii. 249 ; v. 157, 167-70, 108 ; iii. 251-61 ; iv. 17, 253 ; v. 103, 217-18, 562 ; Scritti inediti, p. 9. Chapter XIV. Opp. v. 94-6, 58, 79, 321, 63-4, 84-5, 96, 93, 100 ; iv. 2 7-8, 29-30, 97, 169, 200, 271 ; v. 182-3, 61-4 ; iii. 230 ; iv. 236-43, 184 ; iii. 450-59 ; v. 113, 115, 149, 211, 59, 74, 100, 183 ; iv. 75-6, 89 ; v. 206 ; iv. 99 ; iii. 273 ; v. 260 ; iii. 280 ; v. 430-31, 202-3, 98-9. Chapter XV. Opp. v. 356, 357, 255, 355, 121, 361-3, 363- 365. 340. 34i 253, 251-3, 259, 132, 118, 278, 311, 309, 307, 118-19, 120, 121, 481, 484-6, 293-4, 246, 526, 528, 530-31, 223-5, 444. 43, H4- I 5 222-3, 4 6 o, 220, 194, 191-3, 186, 249, 369, 371, 372, 375, 382, 403, 69 ; iv. 54, 83-4, 225-6. Chapter XVI. Opp. v. 380-81, 422-5, 452, 277, 360-61, 381, 426, 435-6, 465, 425, 427, 442, 427-32, 440-41, 445, 448-9, 451, 455, 428-9, 445, 449-56, 445-6, 448, 452, 378-81, 441-2, 453-4, 78, 446-7, 458-60, 433-4, 439; iv. 178 ; vi. 46 ; v. 100-101, 467-80, 381, 223-4, 457 I00 > 102, 226, 438 ; iv. 163, 25, 63, 200, 128 ; iii. 295. Chapter XVII. Opp. iv. 249-50, 228 ; v. 183, 188 ; iii. 306-10; iv. 93, 34, 155; v. 86, 277, 322-3, 416, 129, 413- 416, 81, 326, 86 ; iii. 473 ; v. 509-10, 102 ; iii. 469-75, 87, 122-3 > i y - 67-71 ; v. 123-4, I 9 I ^5' 100, 88, 290-91, 310, 496, 88-92, 123, 495-505, 502, 327, 525-30, 531, 534, 5o6, 474- 476, 401, 551, 555, 514, 476, 515, 537-8, 122, 503, 521, 508, 523, 503, 514. Chapter XVIII. Opp. v. 550, 537, 259, 540-41, 546, 555- 556 ; iv. loi, 545, 347-8, 552, 555, 544, 554, 537, 539, 538, 551, 328, 547, 552, 512, 553, 550, 508-9, 68, 488, 547, 538-9, 231, 233, 204, 222, 226, 361, 425, 428-39, 457 ; iii. 357 ; vi. 37, 45-6 ; iii. 270 ; vi. 35, 37-8, 42, 48 ; v. 429, 439 ; iv. 198- 200 ; vi. 38 ; v. 43, 226, 555, 544, 508-9, 557-8 ; iv. 235-6, 71. Chapter XIX. For this chapter see the De ratione, the first pages of the Autobiography and the letters to Esperti, De Vitry, and Solla. On wisdom see also Opp. v. 153. INDEX OF NAMES ABRAHAM, 147 Achilles, 100, 125, 183 seqq. Acilius Glabrio, 194 Acquaviva, M., 138, 287 Acri, F., 309 Aelian, 176 Aeneas, 198 Aesop, 69 Agamemnon, 170, 183 Agis, 1 68 Albertus Magnus, 293, 294 Alexander, 92, 125, 132, 212 Amante, E., 307 Amari, E., 309 Amodeo, 248 Andronicus, Livius, 194 Angelis (de), A., 273 Angelis (de), G., 261 Angioli (degli), 304 Antaeus, 179 Archilochus, 177 Ariosto, 222 Aristarchus, 187 Aristides, 90, 125, 132, 196 Aristotle, 16, 35, 47, 50, 52, 69, 92, 96, 167, 193, 256, 293-6 Arnauld, 229 Atlas, 157 Augustine, St., 286 Augustus, 209 Baader, 274, 277, 279 Bachhofen, 243 Bacon, 15, 16, 25, 33. 35, 62, 74, 112, 155 Ballanche, 273 Balmes, 276, 280, 282 Balzac, 274 Balzo (del), A., 229 Banier, 63 Bartolo, 221 Baumgarten, 47 Bayle, P., 78, 87, 154, 234 Berosus, 157 Bertini, 280 Biese, 277 Bignon (du), 269 Bion, 194 Boccaccio, 62, 131, 163, 223 Bochart, 198 Bockh, A., 274 Bodin, J., 166, 218 Boiardo, 222 Bonamy, 269 Bossuet, 117, 149 Boulanger, 269 Bouvy, E., 309 Boyle, R., 138 Brennus, 79 Bruno (Giordano), 72, 249. 275, 294 Brutus (Junius), 168, 171, 199 Caesar, 125, 132 Caligula, 125 Campanella, T., 72, 94, 96, 123, 249, 294 Cantoni, C., 276, 303-4 Capasso, N., 257, 259 Capet (Hugh), 218 Caracalla, 212 Carafa, A., 22, 250 Cardano, G., 288, 291, 295 Carducci, 248 n. Carneades, 78, 82 Cassiodorus, 294 Castelvetro, 52 Cauer, E., 308 Cenni, E., 275, 309 Cesarotti, 270 Chastellux, 269 Chateaubriand, 164, 274 Cicero, 73, 87, 176, 194, 202 Cirillo, N., 259 Cola di Rienzo, 223 Colangelo, F., 272 Coleridge, Nelson, 307 313 314 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBATTISTA VICO Comte, A., 274 Concina, N., 261 Confucius, 180 Confuorto, 248 Conrad III., 221 Constantine, 211 Conti, A., 269 Conti, N., 62 Corcia, N. M., 306-7 Corneille, 232 Cornelio, T., 289, 291, 295 Coulanges, Fustel de, 243, 275 Cournot, 274 Cousin, 274 Cristofaro (G. de), 248 Croce, B., 306 seqq. Cujas, 216 Cuoco, V., 130, 272 Curiatii, 174 Curius, 1 68 Curtius, 168 Cusa (N. of), 301 Cyclic poets, 192 Dale (van), 71 Daniele, F., 306 Dante, 150, 223-5, 242, 257, 275 Darius, 51 Decius, 1 68 Degerando, 273 Descartes, 1-35, 80, 137, 232, 238, 256, 275, 290 seqq. Dio Cassius, 202 Diodorus Siculus, 156, 202 Dion of Syracuse, 226 Dionysius of Halicarnassus, 201 Domitian, 125 Draco, 176, 180 Dubois, Cardinal, 233 Duni, 269 Eckehart, 301 Eling, Ingewald, 52 Ennius, 194 Epicureans, 87, 97 Epicurus, 82, 101, 137 Esperti, 304, 312 Esteban, E., 261 Euclid, 28 Eusebius, 176 Ezekiel, 92 Fabius Maximus, 205 Fabricius, 168 Faggi, A., 308 Ferrari, G., 265, 305 seqq. Perron (de), 274 Fichte, 240 Ficino, M., 138, 287, 291, 295 Filangieri, 271, 272 Finetti, 259, 271, 274 Finocchietti, F., 308 Fiorentino, F., 288, 308 Flaubert, 253, 275 Flint, R., 277, 308 Folchieri, G., 310 Fontenelle, 71, 154 Foscolo, 170, 273 Franck, A., 274 Gaeta (di), M., 260 Galasso, A., 302, 306 Galiani, 262 Galen, 50 Galileo, 14, 15, 138, 141, 283, 296-7 Gambetta, 274 Garofalo, P., 309 Gassendi, 138 Genovesi, A., 252, 262 Gentile, G., 263 ., 267, 287 n., 306 seqq. Gerning, 272 Geulinx, 289 Giacchi, 248, 260, 304 Giani, C., 307 Giannone, P., 121, 250, 284 n. Gioberti, 275 Giordano, 165, 305 Giudice (del), G., 305, 311 Giustiniani, L., 272 Goethe, viii, 271 Gorgias, 177 Gracchi, 205 Grandi, 269 Gravina, 31 Grimm, 243 Grotius, 22, 31, 46, 74, 82 seqq., 249 Gunther, 223 Hadrian, 212 Hamann, 239, 271 Hannibal, 158 Hecataeus, 189 Hegel, 238 seqq., 270, 274-5 Heraclitus, 202 Hercules, 65, 179 Herder, 145, 239, 271, 277 Hermodorus, 202 Herodotus, 73, 158, 187 Hesiod, 63 Heyne, 239, 270 Hobbes, 78, 87, 101 Hoffding, H., 277 Hoffmann, 234 INDEX OF NAMES Hoffmannswaldau, 225 Holbach (d 1 ), 277 Homer, 64, 150, 162, 183 seqq., 223, 242, 270 Horace, 177, 191, 192, 195 Horatii, 174 Huet, D., 63 Humboldt, 239 Hume, 239 lamblichus, 50 lannelli, 247, 273, 309 Idanturas, 51 Iphigenia, 170 Jacobi, 271, 273, 279 Jansenism, 98 Jerome (St.), 176 Josephus, 93, 176 Jouffroy, 274 Jupiter and the Twelve Gods, 64, 147, 1 60, 179 Justinian, 98, 210, 221 Kant, 238 seqq., 267, 275, 280 Kircher, 15 Labanca, B., 272 ., 309 Lactantius, 93 Laelius, 90 Lami, G., 271 Latius, W., 52 Laurent, 274 Laurenzano (Duke of), 252 Leclerc, J., 63 Leibniz, 31, 74, 141, 238, 243, 295 Leonardo da Vinci, 297 Lenninier, 274 Lex Canuleia, 204 Lex Petelia, 195, 205 Lex Publilia, 195, 204 Lipsius, 177 Livy, 158, 162, 201 Locke, 78, 8 1, 138, 295 Lodovico, 262 Lohenstein, 225 Lomonaco, F., 272 Longinus, 187, 195 Lucretius, 137 Lulle, 14 Luzan, I., 262 Lycurgus, 176 Machiavelli, 35, 78, 81, 101, 123, 200, 213 Maffei, 151 Malebranche, 8, 80, 140, 232, 289, 292 Mallinkrot, B., 52 Manlius, 168 Manlius Capitolinus, 168 Manzoni, 273 Marino (cavalier), 225, 229 Marx, K., 243 Maugain, G., 309 Mauthner, F., 277, 284 n. Mazzoni, I., 138, 287 Menander, 193 Mendelssohn, 277 Menelaus, 174 Mercurius Trimegistus, 157, 180 Merlin, 163 Metastasio, 232, 259 Michelet, 273, 307 Mill, J. S., 274 Minos, 176 Moliere, 232 Mommsen, 243, 274 Montesquieu, 269 Monti, V., 272, 307 Moreri, 234 Moschus, 194 Moses, 93, 147, 195-6 Muller, K. H., 243, 307 Miiller, O., 239, 274 Muratori, 80, 151, 273 Naevius, 194 Neal, Th., 280 . Nero, 125 Newton, 141, 261 Nicole, P., 80 Nicolini, F., 152, 305 seqq. Niebuhr, 243, 274 Nietzsche, F., 243 Nifo, A., 138, 287 Noah, 147 Numa Pompilius, 92 Occam, William of, 285, 291 Oldenorp, 216 Olivieri, 309 Orelli, 274, 309 Origen, 176 Orpheus, 157, 180 Otto of Freising, 286 Pagano, M., 269, 272 Paley, 277 Pallavicino, 80 Paoli (Father), 259 Papini, G., 285, 296 Paris, 174 Pascal, 80 Pastore, A., 289 316 THE PHILOSOPHY OF GIAMBA TTISTA VICO Patrizio, F., 52, 138, 287 Paulus Venetus, 229, 284 Pessico, F., 310 Petrarch, 151, 223 Petrus Hispanus, 284 Photius, 234 Piccolomini, A., 138, 287 Pico della Mirandola, 138, 287 Pindar, 192, 195 Plato, 35, 46, 50, 52, 64, 74, 102, 105, 123, 165, 180, 195, 198, 255, 287, 304 Plautus, 3 Plotinus, 287 Plutarch, 169, 187, 195, 200 Polybius, 90, 123, 202 Polyxena, 253 Pomodoro, F. S., 306 Pomponius, 81 Port Royal, 229 Predari, F., 306 Priam, 253, 291 Proclus, 14 Publilius Philo, 151, 204 Puffendorf, 46, 75, 87 seqq. Pyrrhus, 160, 199 Pythagoras, 92, 158, 198, 202 Pythagoreans, 226 Regillus, 194 Regulus, 1 68 Richard, 91 Rinaldi, 192 Rogadei, G. D., 271 Roland, 163 Romano, D., 263, 269, 271 Romulus, 102, 124, 162, 198, 218 and the other kings of Rome, 180 Rosa (de), C. A., see Villarosa Rosmini, 275 Rossi, G., 309 Saint-fWemond, 154 Salfi, 272 Salvius Julianus, 212 Sanchez, F., 4, 286 Sanchez, F. (the Brocense), 46, 52 Sanctis (de), F., 243, 257, 275, 291, 308 Sarchi, 307 Sarpi, P., 285, 296 Savigny, 243, 274 Scaevola, Mucius, 168 Scaevola, Q. Mucius (jurist), 255 Scaliger, J. C., 46, 52, 151, 154 Schelling, 277, 279 Schopenhauer, 241 Schopp, G., 46 Scipio Africanus, 90, 125, 132 Scipio Nasica, 205 Scotus, Duns, 60, 285, 291 Selden, 46, 75, 92, 149 Seneca, 156 Servius Tullius, 199 Shakespear, 225, 232 Simon the Just, 92 Socrates, 27, 69, 74, 90 Solla, F., 260, 304, 312 Solon, 151 Sorel, G., 214 ., 243, 277, 309 Sostegni, 265 Spaventa, B., 136, 275, 283, 308 Spinoza, 26, 78, 87, 101, 138, 196, 238, 275, 290 Steuco, 138, 287 Stewart, Dugald, 238 Stobaeus, 234 Stoics, 25, 97 Strabo, 189 Suidas, 234 Sulla, 208 Tacitus, 74, 102, 146, 169, 172, 209 Tanucci, B., 269 Tarquins, 51, 167, 199 Tasso, 291 Terence, 161 Terrasson, 269 Tesauro, E., 53 Theophrastus, 196 Thierry, 164, 243 Thomas Aquinas (St.)i 28, 281-3 293, 294 Thomasius, 99, 240 Thucydides, 158 Tiberius, 125 Timaeus, 138 Tommaseo, N., 257, 275 Torricelli, E., 297-9 Trabalza, C., 309 Tribonian, royal law of, 209, 226 Trivulzi, Cristina, princess of Bel- gioioso, 307 Troya, C., 243 Turpin, 222 Twelve Tables, 176, 180, 2 01, 203, 207, 263, 269, 303 Ulysses, 179, 184 seqq. Vacherot, 274 Valletta, G., 232 Varro, 162, 195, 207, 255 Vico (Gennaro), 253, 267, 306 INDEX OF NAMES Vico (Luisa), 253 Villarosa, 306, 308 Virgil, 195 Visconti, 164 Vitry (de, Father), 251, 304, 312 Vossius, 63, 188 Weber, W. E., 307 Werner, 277, 280, 308-9 William of Apulia, 223 Windelband, 5 n., 277, 280, 310 Wolf, F. A., 243, 270, 309 Wulf (de), 301 Wundt, 241 Xenophon, 158 Zeno, 138, 140 Zeno, A., 151 Zoega, 270 Zoroaster, 157, 180 Zottoli, A. A., 290 THE END Printed by R. & R. CLARK, LIMITED, Edinburgh.